Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n worship_n worship_v write_v 182 4 5.0375 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B00718 A conference of the Catholike and Protestante doctrine with the expresse words of Holie Scripture. Which is the second parte of the prudentiall balance of religion. : VVherein is clearely shewed, that in more than 260 points of controuersie, Catholicks agree with the Holie Scripture, both in words and sense: and Protestants disagree in both, and depraue both the sayings, words, and sense of Scripture. / Written first in Latin, but now augmented and translated into English.; Collatio doctrinae Catholicorum ac Protestantium cum expressis S. Scripturae verbis. English. 1631 Smith, Richard, 1566-1655. 1631 (1631) STC 22810; ESTC S123294 532,875 801

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

power_n do_v open_v the_o shut_v door_n the_o door_n be_v not_o shut_v in_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o his_o pass_n see_v more_o art_n 23._o scripture_n have_v a_o great_a high_a priest_n that_o have_v penetrate_v us._n christ_n penetrate_v the_o heaven_n not_o penetrate_v they_o christ_n pray_v for_o us._n he_o pray_v not_o for_o us._n the_o heavenes_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n protestant_n christ_n ascend_v without_o penetration_n of_o quantity_n we_o admit_v no_o penetration_n see_v art_n 14._o scripture_n i_o will_v ask_v the_o father_n who_o also_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n protestant_n we_o may_v not_o imagine_v that_o christ_n as_o a_o suppliant_a pray_v for_o us._n his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n be_v in_o steed_n of_o a_o eternal_a intercession_n see_v more_o art_n 25._o chapter_n iv_o of_o angel_n and_o saintes_n scripture_n and_o the_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n answer_v and_o say_v o_o us._n angel_n pray_v for_o us._n lord_n of_o host_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o not_o have_v mercy_n on_o jerusalem_n protestant_n the_o scripture_n teach_v not_o that_o angel_n pray_v not_o they_o pray_v not_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o holy_a angel_n do_v pray_v in_o particular_a for_o our_o necessity_n see_v art_n 4._o scripture_n and_o he_o prevail_v against_o the_o angel_n and_o be_v unto_o angel_n to_o be_v pray_v unto_o not_o to_o be_v pray_v unto_o strenghtn_v and_o he_o weep_v and_o beseech_v he_o protestant_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n be_v impious_a see_v art_n 8._o scripture_n our_o lord_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o balaam_n and_o he_o see_v the_o unto_o angel_n to_o be_v bow_v unto_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o way_n with_o a_o draw_a sword_n and_o he_o adore_v he_o flat_a to_o the_o ground_n protestant_n we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o neither_o adore_v nor_o worship_n unto_o not_o to_o be_v bow_v unto_o angel_n he_o can_v not_o fall_v down_o to_o the_o angel_n without_o diminish_v god_n honour_n see_v art_n 11._o scripture_n nether_a take_v thou_o away_o thy_o mercy_n from_o we_o for_o pray_v god_n to_o be_v pray_v by_o the_o name_n of_o saintes_n not_o so_o to_o be_v pray_v abraham_n thy_o belove_a and_o isaac_n thy_o servant_n and_o israel_n the_o holy_a one_o protestant_n in_o the_o prophet_n there_o be_v not_o find_v any_o such_o invocation_n hear_v i_o o_o god_n for_o abraham_n god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v beseech_v by_o the_o name_n of_o saintes_n see_v more_o art_n 9_o scripture_n for_o yourselves_o know_v how_o you_o ought_v to_o imitate_v us._n receive_v saint_n to_o be_v imitate_v not_o to_o be_v imitate_v god_n protect_v we_o for_o the_o saint_n sake_n not_o for_o their_o sake_n some_o saint_n bad_a power_n to_o work_v miracle_n none_o have_v such_o power_n sante_n receive_v man_n into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n they_o do_v not_o receive_v be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o protestant_n these_o trifle_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v sing_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v imitate_v the_o saint_n god_n require_v that_o we_o follow_v his_o scripture_n only_o and_o not_o the_o example_n of_o saintes_n see_v art_n 12._o scripture_n i_o will_v protect_v this_o city_n and_o save_v it_o for_o myself_o and_o for_o david_n my_o servant_n protestant_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v that_o they_o say_v through_o god_n liberality_n and_o christ_n grace_n the_o merit_n of_o saint_n do_v profit_v we_o to_o protection_n see_v art_n 10._o scripture_n and_o he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o cure_v infirmity_n and_o to_o cast_v out_o devil_n protestant_n god_n never_o give_v any_o man_n power_n of_o work_a miracle_n either_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o see_v art_n 16._o scripture_n make_v unto_o you_o friend_n of_o the_o mammon_n of_o iniquity_n that_o when_o you_o fail_v they_o may_v receive_v you_o into_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n protestant_n we_o must_v not_o understand_v that_o man_n shall_v receive_v we_o into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n see_v art_n 13._o scripture_n they_o shall_v be_v priest_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o shall_v he_o saint_n reign_n with_o he_o reign_v with_o he_o protestant_n the_o saint_n do_v not_o reign_v with_o christ._n see_v art_n he_o they_o reign_n not_o with_o he_o 16._o scripture_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v overcome_v and_o keep_v my_o work_n nation_n saint_n rule_v nation_n unto_o the_o end_n i_o will_v give_v he_o power_n over_o the_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n protestant_n it_o be_v a_o error_n that_o angel_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o not_o they_o rule_v they_o not_o bless_a man_n be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v us._n see_v art_n 16._o cit_fw-la chapter_n v._o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o word_n of_o god._n scripture_n paul_n according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v he_o have_v hard_o some_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v hard_o write_v as_o also_o in_o all_o epistle_n speak_v in_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o be_v certain_a hard_a to_o be_v understand_v protestant_n peter_n say_v not_o that_o paul_n epistle_n be_v obscure_a hard_a no_o thing_n hard_a no_o nor_o that_o there_o be_v some_o obscure_a thing_n in_o paul_n epistle_n no_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a how_o can_v the_o scripture_n be_v call_v obscure_a in_o any_o part_n see_v more_o art_n 1._o scripture_n jesus_n begin_v to_o preach_v and_o say_v do_v penance_n for_o not_o the_o gospel_n preach_v penance_n it_o preach_v it_o not_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n protestant_n the_o gospel_n proper_o be_v not_o a_o preach_n of_o penance_n the_o gospel_n preach_v not_o to_o we_o that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o exact_v any_o thing_n of_o us._n see_v more_o art_n 4._o scripture_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n conditional_o promise_v life_n conditional_o protestant_n the_o gospel_n promise_v salvation_n even_o to_o those_o conditional_o not_o conditional_o that_o have_v no_o good_a work_n at_o all_o the_o gospel_n require_v not_o work_n to_o salvation_n see_v more_o art_n 6._o law_n gospel_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n scripture_n do_v we_o then_o destroy_v the_o law_n by_o faith_n god_n forbid_v but_o we_o establish_v the_o law_n protestant_n the_o gospel_n be_v true_o opposite_a to_o the_o law_n the_o law_n it_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o and_o the_o gospel_n of_o themselves_o whole_o fight_v one_o with_o the_o other_o see_v more_o art_n 7._o scripture_n all_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v keep_v moses_n law_n command_v faith_n in_o christ_n it_o command_v it_o not_o tradition_n to_o be_v keep_v not_o to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o psalm_n of_o i_o protestant_n faith_n in_o christ_n the_o law_n never_o know_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v not_o faith_n in_o christ_n see_v more_o art_n 8._o scripture_n hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n protestant_n we_o care_v not_o for_o unwritten_a tradition_n we_o acknowledge_v no_o word_n but_o that_o which_o be_v write_v see_v more_o art_n 9_o chapter_n vi_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n scripture_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v peter_n church_n build_v upon_o peter_n my_o church_n protestant_n peter_n be_v not_o rock_n because_o christ_n do_v not_o build_v peter_n not_o upon_o peter_n his_o church_n upon_o peter_n see_v more_o art_n 2._o scripture_n and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o to_o thou_o peter_n keyos_n give_v to_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n protestant_n christ_n call_v faith_n the_o rock_n to_o which_o rock_n not_o to_o he_o not_o give_v to_o he_o peter_n be_v give_v these_o key_n see_v art_n 3._o scripture_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v fail_v peter_n faith_n fail_v not_o it_o fail_v not_o protestant_n for_o a_o time_n sure_o peter_n say_v fail_v while_o he_o deny_v christ_n it_o be_v a_o blasphemous_a speech_n that_o peter_n deny_v christ_n do_v not_o less_o his_o faith_n see_v more_o art_n 4._o scripture_n and_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n foundation_n the_o apostle_n foundation_n and_o in_o they_o twelve_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n protestant_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o the_o foundation_n see_v foundation_n not_o foundation_n more_o art_n 5._o scripture_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o hear_v the_o apostle_n simple_o to_o be_v hear_v not_o simple_o to_o be_v hear_v protestant_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o simple_o to_o be_v hear_v but_o to_o be_v examine_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n s._n paul_n
work_n work_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o such_o god_n no_o such_o godhead_n which_o be_v delight_v with_o these_o thing_n and_o to_o 7._o serm._n in_o hebr._n 11._o god_n care_v not_o great_o what_o kind_n or_o what_o notable_a work_n we_o do_v tindall_n in_o fox_n his_o act_n print_v 1610._o p._n 1138._o there_o be_v no_o preach_v to_o make_v water_n please_v god_n as_o much_o as_o preach_v work_n better_o than_o a_o other_o to_o please_v god_n to_o make_v water_n to_o wash_v dish_n to_o be_v a_o sowter_n or_o a_o apostle_n all_o be_v one_o to_o wash_v dish_n and_o to_o preach_v all_o be_v one_o as_o touch_v the_o deed_n to_o please_v god_n other_o protestant_n as_o testify_v schusselburg_n to_o 7._o catal._n haeret._n p._n 551._o melancthon_n in_o respon_n ad_fw-la artic_a bavar_n to_o 3._o and_o manlius_n in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr eccles_n say_v god_n care_v not_o for_o good_a work_n and_o the_o same_o also_o do_v they_o think_v who_o as_o we_o shall_v relate_v hereafter_o say_v that_o before_o god_n good_a work_n be_v mere_a iniquity_n filth_n stench_n and_o dung_n for_o sure_o god_n care_v not_o for_o such_o thing_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o good_a work_n be_v a_o sweet_a savour_n before_o god_n be_v like_v of_o god_n please_v god_n be_v please_v before_o god_n the_o like_a say_v catholik_o protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o god_n care_v not_o for_o work_n care_v not_o at_o all_o for_o they_o do_v not_o regard_n or_o respect_v they_o be_v not_o delight_v with_o they_o care_v not_o what_o notable_a work_n we_o do_v make_v not_o account_v of_o they_o yea_o great_o loathe_v they_o that_o to_o wash_v dish_n to_o make_v water_n to_o play_v the_o cobbler_n please_v god_n as_o well_o as_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n art_fw-la fourteen_o whether_o god_n be_v worship_v or_o serve_v with_o good_a work_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n isaie_n 19_o v._n 21._o the_o egyptian_n shall_v know_v our_o lord_n in_o that_o day_n and_o shall_v worship_v he_o in_o host_n and_o in_o gift_n work_n god_n worship_v by_o work_n luke_n v._o 2._o c._n 37._o who_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o temple_n by_o fasting_n and_o prayer_n serve_v night_n and_o day_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o joan._n 4._o v._n 23._o therefore_o god_n be_v so_o serve_v inspirit_v and_o truth_n that_o as_o this_o worship_n do_v not_o exclude_v the_o outward_a act_n of_o piety_n and_o work_n of_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n wherewith_o we_o worship_v and_o serve_v god_n in_o justice_n so_o etc._n etc._n protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n delibertate_fw-la christiana_n to_o 2._o fol._n 5._o for_o we_o do_v not_o work_n not_o glorify_v by_o work_n glorify_v god_n by_o work_v but_o by_o believe_v ibid._n count_v regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la fol._n 334._o god_n be_v serve_v by_o faith_n only_o de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la they_o not_o serve_v by_o they_o to_o 5._o fol._n 580._o only_o faith_n be_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o c._n 1._o jonae_fw-la to_o 4._o fol._n 412._o the_o true_a god_n be_v not_o serve_v with_o work_n there_o be_v one_o only_a worship_n please_v to_o god_n to_o will_v true_a faith_n tindal_n in_o fox_n before_o cite_v god_n be_v honour_v on_o all_o side_n in_o work_n not_o worship_v by_o work_n that_o we_o count_v he_o righteous_a in_o all_o his_o law_n and_o ordinance_n and_o also_o true_a in_o all_o his_o promise_n other_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v none_o except_o we_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o he_o confession_n of_o basil_n art_n 13._o faith_n be_v the_o only_a true_a worship_n of_o god_n the_o like_a say_v other_o protestant_n who_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o teach_v that_o good_a work_n be_v sin_n before_o god_n for_o god_n be_v not_o serve_v or_o worship_v with_o sin_n but_o disserued_a and_o dishonour_v by_o it_o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o god_n be_v worship_v and_o serve_v with_o good_a work_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o glorify_v by_o work_v that_o god_n be_v not_o serve_v by_o work_n that_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a true_a worship_n of_o god_n that_o god_n be_v serve_v by_o only_a faith_n that_o only_a faith_n be_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o to_o believe_v he_o right_o in_o all_o his_o law_n and_o true_a in_o all_o his_o promise_n art_fw-la xv._o whether_o god_n do_v account_v those_o good_a work_n which_o be_v not_o command_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n mark_n 14._o v._n 3._o and_o 6._o there_o come_v a_o woman_n have_v a_o alabaster_n box_n of_o ointment_n of_o precious_a spike-nard_n and_o break_v the_o sight_n a_o work_n not_o command_v good_a in_o god_n sight_n alabaster_n box_n she_o pour_v it_o out_o upon_o his_o head_n but_o jesus_n say_v let_v she_o alone_o why_o do_v you_o molest_v she_o she_o have_v wrought_v a_o good_a work_n upon_o i_o 1._o corint_fw-la 7._o 25._o and_o as_o concern_v virgin_n a_o commandment_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o have_v not_o but_o counsel_v i_o give_v catholik_o express_o affirm_v card._n bellarmin_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la monachis_fw-la c._n 16._o god_n be_v worship_v with_o every_o act_n of_o virtue_n though_o not_o command_v yet_o do_v for_o god_n protestant_n express_o deny_v confessio_fw-la heluet._n c._n 16._o god_n like_v not_o work_n and_o worship_n choose_a by_o us._n and_o confessio_fw-la saxon._n c._n 17._o we_o teach_v that_o work_v as_o they_o say_v not_o due_a be_v no_o worship_n of_o god_n luther_n postilla_fw-la in_o festo_fw-la s._n joan._n fol._n 92._o nothing_o please_v god_n work_v not_o command_v not_o please_v to_o god_n god_n uhich_v be_v do_v without_o his_o commandment_n melancthon_n in_o disput_fw-la to_o 4._o p._n 602._o work_v not_o command_v from_o heaven_n be_v no_o worhippe_n of_o god_n caluin_n 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 13._o §_o 2._o all_o voluntary_a worship_n which_o we_o devise_v without_o his_o commandment_n be_v abominable_a to_o god_n in_o rom._n 5._o v._n 19_o they_o dote_v who_o vaunt_n to_o god_n of_o their_o work_n devise_v by_o themselves_o who_o esteem_v they_o no_o more_o than_o dung_n lobechius_n in_o disput_fw-la 9_o p._n 184._o without_o god_n commandment_n good_a nor_o good_a a_o work_n though_o do_v with_o never_o so_o good_a intention_n nor_o forbid_a nether_a be_v nor_o can_v be_v good_a the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o affirm_v that_o s._n magdalen_n anoint_v of_o christ_n though_o not_o command_v be_v a_o good_a work_n &_o grateful_a to_o he_o that_o virginity_n be_v good_a though_o not_o command_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o god_n like_v no_o work_n not_o command_v by_o he_o that_o no_o work_n not_o command_v be_v any_o worship_n of_o god_n that_o no_o work_n whatsoever_o not_o command_v of_o god_n be_v good_a that_o what_o we_o do_v without_o god_n commandment_n be_v no_o more_o respect_v of_o god_n than_o dung_n and_o be_v abominable_a to_o he_o art_fw-la xvi_o whether_o god_n be_v pacify_v with_o good_a work_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n 〈…〉_o 11._o and._n 13._o but_o moses_n beseech_v the_o lord_n his_o work_n god_n pacify_v by_o work_n god_n say_v why_o 〈…〉_o fury_n angry_a against_o thy_o people_n etc._n etc._n and_o our_o lord_n be_v pacify_v 〈…〉_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v against_o his_o people_n 2._o paralipoman_n 30._o v._n 18._o and_o 20._o and_o 〈…〉_o for_o they_o saying_n etc._n etc._n who_o our_o lord_n hear_v and_o be_v pacify_v to_o the_o people_n psalm_n 105._o v._n 30._o and_o phinees_n stand_v and_o pacify_v and_o the_o slaughter_n cease_v ezech._n 43._o v._o 27._o the_o priest_n shall_v make_v your_o holocau_v upon_o the_o altar_n and_o those_o which_o they_o offer_v for_o peace_n and_o i_o will_v be_v pacify_v towards_o you_o say_v our_o lord_n god_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o matth._n 17._o v._n 21._o diverse_a example_n in_o scripture_n do_v teach_v we_o the_o force_n and_o power_n of_o fast_v join_v with_o prayer_n for_o to_o pacify_v god_n protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n in_o c._n 1._o jonae_fw-la to_o 4._o fol._n 411._o papist_n have_v a_o opinion_n that_o god_n can_v be_v pacify_v with_o our_o good_a work_n when_o as_o there_o be_v no_o work_n no_o god_n that_o be_v pacify_v by_o work_n where_o such_o a_o god_n in_o galat._n 2._o to_o 5._o fol._n 363._o the_o work_n which_o i_o do_v according_a to_o god_n law_n do_v not_o pacify_v his_o wrath_n but_o provoke_v it_o wrath_n work_n provoke_v god_n wrath_n caluin_n 4._o inst_z c._n 15._o §_o 4._o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o our_o good_a work_n be_v always_o stain_v with_o
unite_v the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v invocate_v as_o he_o be_v son_n of_o david_n and_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n he_o have_v not_o yet_o enter_v into_o his_o kingdom_n and_o that_o he_o be_v adore_v as_o he_o be_v a_o child_n and_o the_o son_n of_o marie_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v invocate_v that_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n he_o hear_v not_o our_o prayer_n in_o heaven_n that_o as_o man_n he_o be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v worship_v that_o godhead_n be_v the_o only_a proper_a object_n of_o religious_a worship_n that_o who_o direct_v their_o invocation_n or_o adoration_n to_o christ_n humanity_n blaspheme_v god_n be_v true_a idolater_n blaspheme_v god_n and_o be_v accurse_v by_o god_n mouth_n which_o be_v so_o opposite_a to_o scripture_n as_o some_o protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v l._n 2._o c._n ult._n art_fw-la iv_o whether_o christ_n as_o man_n or_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n have_v power_n to_o quicken_v to_o remit_v sin_n to_o work_v miracle_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n matthew_n 9_o v._o 6._o and_o 8._o but_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o sin_n christ_n as_o man_n have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n in_o earth_n to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o the_o multitude_n see_v it_o be_v affraied_a &_o glorify_a god_n that_o give_v such_o power_n to_o man_n ihon._n 6._o v._o 54._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n life_n to_o give_v life_n have_v life_n everlasting_a acts._n 4._o vers_fw-la 10._o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o nazareth_n miracle_n to_o work_v miracle_n who_o you_o do_v crucify_v who_o god_n have_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a in_o this_o same_o this_o man_n stand_v before_o you_o whole_a hebrew_n 9_o v._o 19_o for_o if_o the_o blood_n of_o goat_n and_o of_o ox_n and_o the_o ass_n of_o a_o heifer_n be_v sprincled_a sanctifi_v the_o pollute_a to_o the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o flesh_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n offer_v himself_o unspotted_a unto_o god_n sin_n to_o pu●ge_v from_o sin_n cleanse_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v s._n thomas_n 3._o part_n 416._o art_n 11._o the_o power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n consist_v in_o christ_n divine_a nature_n by_o authority_n but_o in_o his_o humane_a nature_n it_o be_v instrumental_o and_o by_o ministry_n protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n in_o galat._n 3._o v._o 5._o not_o christ_n himself_o as_o man_n can_v man_n as_o man_n he_o can_v not_o work_v a_o miracle_n not_o profitable_a as_o man_n work_v a_o true_a miracle_n zuinglius_fw-la l._n de_fw-fr ver_fw-la &_o falsa_fw-la relig_n c._n de_fw-fr euchar._n to_o 2._o christ_n be_v profitable_a to_o we_o on_o that_o part_n wherewith_o he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n not_o on_o that_o whereby_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o immaculate_a virgin_n again_o he_o can_v be_v profitable_a only_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n which_o he_o repeat_v in_o joan._n 6._o to_o m._n 4._o and_o there_o add_v christ_n flesh_n profit_v nothing_o nothing_o at_o all_o life_n his_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o at_o all_o have_v not_o power_n to_o give_v life_n beza_n in_o colloq_fw-la montisbel_n p._n 276._o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o deny_v that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v true_o vivificall_a a_o gain_n but_o that_o there_o be_v any_o power_n or_o virtue_n of_o quicken_a in_o christ_n flesh_n for_o which_o power_n impart_v to_o it_o it_o may_v be_v say_v vivificall_a and_o to_o quicken_v that_o we_o deny_v and_o p._n 279._o the_o virtue_n of_o quicken_a be_v so_o proper_a to_o the_o divinity_n as_o it_o can_v be_v communicate_v even_o to_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o creature_n unless_o it_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o divinity_n lib._n count_v brent_n col_fw-fr 1._o pag._n 527._o he_o deni_v that_o christ_n humanity_n forgive_v sin_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o divinity_n which_o have_v give_v this_o power_n to_o it_o and_o p._n 545._o say_v note_v that_o the_o power_n of_o save_v be_v not_o attribute_v to_o the_o flesh_n though_o assumpt_v but_o to_o the_o divinity_n of_o which_o it_o be_v assumpt_v and_o in_o colloq_fw-la cit_fw-la p._n 228._o the_o raise_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o divinity_n dead_a nor_o to_o raise_v the_o dead_a only_o which_o can_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n daneus_fw-la controu_n 4._o q._n 9_o p._n 195._o christ_n the_o son_n of_o man_n live_v on_o earth_n remit_v sin_n but_o not_o as_o man_n but_o as_o god_n as_o in_o man_n remit_v not_o sin_n as_o man_n the_o same_o divine_a nature_n he_o wrought_v miracle_n not_o as_o man_n sadeel_v respon_n ad_fw-la art_n abiurat_n 5._o our_o life_n first_o proper_o and_o precise_o proceed_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o divine_n prayer_n nor_o hear_v our_o prayer_n of_o heidelberg_n before_o cite_v christ_n as_o man_n hear_v not_o our_o prayer_n in_o heaven_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v in_o earth_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n that_o who_o eat_v his_o flesh_n have_v life_n everlasting_a that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n crucify_a miracle_n be_v wrought_v that_o his_o blood_n cleanse_v our_o conscience_n from_o sin_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v the_o contrary_a that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o profitable_a unto_o we_o that_o his_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o at_o all_o that_o it_o be_v not_o vivificall_a not_o have_v any_o virtue_n of_o quicken_a that_o the_o divinity_n have_v not_o give_v it_o any_o power_n of_o forgive_v sin_n that_o our_o life_n proceed_v precise_o from_o the_o divinity_n that_o christ_n as_o man_n do_v not_o forgive_v sin_n do_v not_o work_v any_o miracle_n can_v not_o work_v any_o miracle_n that_o the_o raise_n of_o the_o dead_a can_v be_v attribute_v to_o his_o humanity_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o diverse_a protestant_n do_v acknowledge_v it_o see_v l._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la v._o whether_o christ_n as_o man_n or_o his_o humanity_n be_v every_o where_n scripture_n express_o denieth._n matthew_n 28._o v._n 6._o i_o know_v that_o you_o seek_v jesus_n that_o be_v crucify_v resurrection_n christ_n body_n not_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o be_v not_o here_o john_n 11._o v._o 15._o jesus_n say_v to_o they_o plain_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a and_o seek_v not_o where_o lazarus_n die_v not_o where●e_o be_v seek_v i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v because_o i_o be_v not_o there_o and_o c._n 6._o v._n 24._o when_o therefore_o the_o multitude_n see_v that_o jesus_n be_v not_o there_o not_o his_o disciple_n they_o &c._n &c._n catholik_o express_o deny_v card._n bellarmin_n l._n 3._o the_o incarnate_a c._n 11._o that_o christ_n humanity_n be_v everiewhere_o be_v against_o scripture_n protestant_n express_o affirm_v luther_n in_o defence_n verb._n caenae_fw-la to_o 7._o fol._n 394._o christ_n manifest_o earth_n christ_n body_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n testify_v that_o his_o body_n be_v at_o once_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n or_o rather_o present_a every_o where_o which_o he_o oftentimes_o repeat_v whereupon_o zuinglius_fw-la resp_v ad_fw-la confess_v lutheri_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 446._o say_v that_o luther_n affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v in_o every_o place_n in_o every_n place_n place_n no_o less_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n than_o his_o divine_a brentius_n apud_fw-la bezam_n lib._n cont_n ipsum_fw-la vol._n 1._o theol._n p._n 516._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o wheresoever_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v be_v wheresoever_o his_o godhead_n be_v there_o also_o he_o have_v with_o he_o his_o humane_a nature_n gerlachius_n tom_n 2._o disput_fw-la 2._o p._n 25._o we_o put_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n almighty_a and_o in_o all_o place_n smidelin_n in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o hist_o fol._n 323._o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o which_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n defend_v open_o in_o the_o conference_n at_o mulbrun_n and_o montbelgard_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n after_o his_o resurrection_n that_o he_o be_v not_o where_o lazarus_n die_v that_o he_o be_v not_o where_o the_o jew_n seek_v he_o the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v every_o where_o that_o his_o humanity_n be_v wheresoever_o his_o divinity_n be_v that_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v in_o all_o place_n which_o be_v so_o opposite_a to_o scripture_n as_o many_o protestant_n
ground_n and_o adore_a say_v &c._n &c._n catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 25._o by_o the_o image_n which_o we_o kiss_v and_o to_o which_o we_o put_v of_o our_o hat_n we_o worship_v the_o saint_n who_o image_n they_o be_v protestant_n express_o deny_v confessio_fw-la mulhusnia_n art_n 10._o we_o dislike_v the_o veneration_n worship_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o saint_n and_o heluet._n c._n 5._o we_o neither_o adore_v nor_o worship_n nor_o invocate_v the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n perkins_n reform_v cathol_n controu_fw-fr 14._o c._n 2._o p._n 249._o because_o worship_n no_o not_o with_o civil_a worship_n angel_n appear_v not_o now_o as_o in_o former_a time_n not_o so_o much_o as_o civil_a adoration_n in_o any_o bodily_a gesture_n be_v to_o be_v do_v unto_o they_o we_o deny_v that_o any_o civil_a worship_n in_o bend_v of_o the_o knee_n or_o prostrate_v of_o the_o body_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n humphrey_n ad_fw-la ration_n 3._o campiani_n pag._n 263._o vigilantius_n teach_v that_o saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reverence_v nor_o that_o we_o ought_v reverence_v not_o to_o be_v reverence_v superstitious_o to_o run_v to_o their_o monument_n we_o say_v the_o same_o whitaker_n contr._n 2._o q._n 6._o c._n 3._o papist_n worship_v angel_n and_o the_o saint_n luther_n postilla_fw-la in_o domin_n 23._o post_fw-la trinit_fw-la for_o what_o other_o be_v the_o worship_n and_o reverence_n of_o saint_n but_o a_o devilish_a thing_n caluin_n 1_o instit_fw-la c._n 12._o §_o 3._o he_o can_v not_o fall_v down_o to_o the_o angel_n without_o diminish_v of_o god_n glory_n bullinger_n decad._n 4._o form_n 9_o we_o must_v be_v ware_n that_o we_o neither_o adore_v invocate_v or_o worship_n angel_n the_o same_o say_v protestant_n common_o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o lot_n see_v angel_n adore_v prostrate_a on_o the_o ground_n that_o josue_n hear_v of_o a_o angel_n that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n of_o god_n host_n fall_v flat_a on_o the_o ground_n and_o adore_v that_o balaam_n adore_v flat_a to_o the_o ground_n a_o angel_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o reprehend_v therefore_o either_o of_o the_o angel_n or_o of_o the_o scripture_n catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o reverence_v venerate_a adore_v worship_n or_o bow_v to_o the_o angel_n or_o saint_n but_o it_o be_v a_o devilish_a thing_n and_o yet_o luther_n himself_o thus_o write_v epist_n ad_fw-la erphurdienses_fw-la tom_n 7._o fol._n 500_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v or_o condemn_v who_o whorshippe_n saint_n without_o presume_a trust_n for_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v to_o saint_n they_o do_v to_o christ._n nether_a can_v it_o be_v but_o christ_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o saint_n art_fw-la xii_o whether_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v imitate_v of_o we_o scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n 1._o cor._n 11._o v._n 1._o be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o as_o i_o also_o of_o christ_n philippen_n 3._o ver_fw-la 17._o be_v follower_n of_o i_o brethren_n and_o observe_v follow_v saint_n to_o be_v imitate_v and_o follow_v they_o that_o walk_v so_o as_o you_o have_v our_o form_n 2._o thessalon_n 3._o v._n 7._o for_o yourselves_o know_v how_o you_o ought_v to_o imitate_v us._n hebr._n 13._o v._o 7._o remember_v your_o prelate_n who_o have_v speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o you_o the_o end_n of_o who_o conversation_n behold_v imitate_v their_o faith_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o lucae_n 9_o v._n 54._o the_o faithful_a christian_n pious_o and_o careful_o imitate_v the_o example_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n postilla_fw-la in_o festo_fw-la s._n joann_n fol._n 378._o these_o trifle_n follow_v saint_n not_o to_o be_v imitate_v or_o follow_v ought_v not_o be_v sing_v unto_o the_o people_n out_o of_o the_o pulpit_n in_o preach_v that_o they_o shall_v imitate_v the_o saint_n and_o follow_v their_o footstep_n and_o in_o ferijs_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la fol._n 91._o a_o old_a error_n have_v get_v possession_n and_o force_n that_o we_o all_o look_v upon_o the_o deed_n and_o life_n of_o saint_n and_o endeavour_v to_o follow_v they_o think_v like_o fool_n that_o this_o be_v a_o great_a piety_n the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n admit_v not_o example_n of_o saint_n but_o in_o all_o thing_n expect_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n only_o in_o die_v epiphaniae_fw-la fol._n 130._o god_n example_n nor_o their_o example_n require_v that_o we_o follow_v his_o only_a scripture_n and_o not_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v follow_v saint_n and_o imitate_v they_o catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v imitate_v or_o follow_v their_o example_n not_o to_o be_v admit_v that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n to_o look_v upon_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n and_o follow_v they_o art_fw-la xiii_o whether_o holy_a man_n receive_v we_o into_o everlasting_a tabernacle_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n luc._n 16._o v._n 9_o and_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o make_v unto_o you_o friend_n of_o heaven_n holy_a man_n receive_v we_o into_o heaven_n the_o mammon_n of_o iniquity_n that_o when_o you_o fail_v they_o may_v receive_v you_o into_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o lucae_n 16._o for_o 9_o christ_n teach_v that_o they_o to_o who_o we_o have_v do_v good_a do_v receive_v we_o into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n that_o be_v christ_n for_o they_o not_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o good_a work_n but_o also_o for_o their_o prayer_n give_v we_o life_n everlasting_a protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n postilla_fw-la in_o dom._n 9_o post_fw-la trinit_fw-la fol._n 107._o we_o must_v heaven_n they_o receive_v we_o not_o into_o heaven_n not_o understand_v that_o man_n shall_v receive_v we_o into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n illyricus_n in_o cleave_v part_n 2._o tractar_n 6._o poor_a man_n be_v say_v to_o receive_v their_o benefactor_n into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n whereas_o this_o be_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o father_n alone_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o son_n caluin_n in_o lucae_n 16._o vers_fw-la 9_o citat_fw-la he_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o must_v get_v patron_n and_o intreatour_n who_o by_o their_o protection_n may_v shield_v and_o defend_v us._n but_o they_o do_v fond_o and_o absurd_o who_o hereupon_o gather_v that_o we_o be_v holpen_v by_o the_o prayer_n or_o suffrage_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o holy_a man_n to_o who_o we_o have_v do_v good_a do_v receive_v we_o into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o no_o man_n receive_v we_o into_o eternal_a tabernacle_n that_o that_o be_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o father_n alone_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o get_v patron_n or_o intreatour_n for_o us._n art_fw-la fourteen_o whether_o any_o saint_n may_v be_v call_v our_o hope_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n 1._o thessalon_n 2._o v._n 18._o for_o what_o be_v our_o hope_n or_o joy_n or_o crown_v hope_n saint_n call_v our_o hope_n of_o glory_n be_v not_o you_o before_o our_o lord_n jesus_n in_o his_o come_n for_o you_o be_v our_o glory_n and_o joy_n john_n 5._o v._o 45._o think_v not_o that_o i_o will_v accuse_v you_o to_o the_o father_n there_o be_v that_o accuse_v you_o moses_n in_o who_o you_o trust_v catholik_o express_o affirm_v c._n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-la bonis_fw-la oper_n in_o part_n c._n 15._o the_o b._n virgin_n be_v call_v our_o hope_n because_o after_o god_n we_o trust_v especial_o in_o her_o intercession_n protestant_n express_o deny_v caluin_n in_o confess_v p._n 109._o many_o kind_n of_o prayer_n be_v bring_v call_v not_o to_o be_v so_o call_v in_o which_o have_v horrible_a blasphemy_n as_o when_o the_o virgin_n be_v term_v of_o infidel_n the_o gate_n of_o salvation_n our_o hope_n beza_n in_o joan._n 2._o v._n 5._o idolatry_n have_v so_o far_o prevail_v that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v marie_n the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n their_o hope_n and_o salvation_n p._n martyr_n in_o 1._o cor._n c._n 3._o they_o call_v the_o b._n virgin_n their_o hope_n as_o if_o they_o will_v put_v their_o hope_n in_o a_o creature_n pareus_n in_o colloq_fw-la 3._o swal_n you_o salute_v marie_n by_o the_o title_n of_o your_o hope_n which_o salutation_n tend_v to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o the_o thessalonian_o be_v the_o hope_n joy_n and_o crown_n of_o glory_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o our_o lord_n that_o the_o jew_n do_v trust_v in_o moses_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o reprehend_v therefore_o catholics_n say_v the_o like_a protestant_n express_o say_v that_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o
tom_n 4._o armat_fw-la cap._n 15._o say_v faith_n be_v call_v a_o work_n not_o absolute_o as_o it_o be_v consider_v in_o itself_o but_o relative_o as_o it_o apprehend_v christ_n hunnius_n de_fw-fr justificat_fw-la pagin_v 157._o faith_n work_v by_o charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n not_o towards_o god_n final_o perkins_n in_o casibus_fw-la c._n 7._o that_o which_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v be_v indeed_o true_a according_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o god_n who_o bind_v he_o but_o it_o be_v not_o true_a always_o according_a to_o the_o event_n of_o good_a work_n in_o general_a they_o coin_v these_o distinction_n general_n of_o good_a work_n in_o general_n the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o just_a be_v good_a in_o part_n not_o whole_o they_o be_v all_o equal_a before_o god_n but_o not_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n in_o his_o throne_n of_o mercy_n but_o not_o of_o justice_n they_o be_v necessary_a to_o justification_n by_o necessity_n of_o presence_n but_o not_o of_o cause_n they_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o to_o justification_n see_v l._n 1._o c._n 14._o art_n 15._o to_o which_o we_o add_v that_o pareus_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la capite_fw-la 17._o say_v that_o good_a work_n be_v worthy_a of_o reward_n in_o the_o court_n of_o mercy_n but_o worthy_a of_o punishment_n in_o the_o court_n of_o justice_n of_o god_n et_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 16._o 23._o &_o 24._o work_n be_v require_v to_o regeneration_n not_o to_o justification_n or_o as_o reineccius_n speak_v 10._o 1._o arm._n c._n 20._o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o sanctification_n not_o to_o justification_n who_o also_o to_o 4_o c._n 22._o distinguish_v a_o work_n in_o give_v and_o receive_v and_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o give_v work_n not_o a_o receive_a schlusselb_n to_o 7._o catal._n p._n 446._o write_v that_o obedience_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o a_o other_o obedience_n not_o we_o and_o add_v the_o duty_n of_o obedience_n be_v indeed_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n forsooth_o if_o it_o be_v not_o free_o remit_v scarpius_n de_fw-fr justif_a contr._n 15._o just_a man_n be_v worthy_a of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n by_o the_o worth_n of_o aptness_n not_o of_o perfection_n or_o merit_n rivet_v tract_n 3_o sect_n 36._o there_o may_v be_v a_o relation_n of_o merit_n and_o reward_n between_o man_n but_o not_o between_o god_n and_o man_n perkins_n in_o cathol_n ref._n cont._n 4._o cap._n 6._o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o as_o cause_v but_o only_o as_o a_o thing_n necessary_a follow_v faith_n touch_v good_a work_n in_o particular_a they_o thus_o distinguish_v particular_a of_o good_a work_n in_o particular_a that_o to_o live_v single_a be_v a_o good_a profitable_a but_o not_o honest_a or_o virtuous_a that_o virginity_n be_v better_a than_o marriage_n in_o something_o but_o not_o simple_o that_o fast_v be_v a_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n in_o the_o law_n but_o not_o in_o the_o gospel_n that_o alm_n deliver_v from_o sin_n and_o death_n not_o by_o itself_o but_o by_o the_o cause_n thereof_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v for_o the_o elect_a not_o for_o other_o for_o the_o live_n not_o for_o the_o dead_a for_o thing_n promise_v in_o the_o scripture_n not_o for_o other_o thing_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o have_v be_v rehearse_v c._n 15._o to_o which_o we_o add_v that_o perkins_n in_o cathol_n reform_v cont._n 3._o c._n 3._o write_v that_o we_o pray_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n past_a as_o present_v confessio_fw-la wittember_n say_v we_o may_v wish_v to_o the_o dead_a all_o rest_n and_o happiness_n in_o christ_n but_o we_o may_v not_o pray_v for_o they_o luther_n in_o postil_n dom._n 2._o post_fw-la trin._n grant_v that_o we_o may_v once_o or_o twice_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o not_o often_o and_o at_o home_o and_o in_o our_o chamber_n but_o not_o in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o like_a have_v vrbanus_n regius_n in_o formulis_fw-la caute_fw-la loquendi_fw-la to_o 1._o who_o also_o in_o locis_fw-la fol._n 322._o say_v that_o we_o may_v pray_v conditional_o for_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o brother_n but_o not_o absolute_o field_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 17._o teach_v that_o we_o may_v pray_v for_o one_o that_o be_v dead_a streigth_z after_o his_o death_n but_o not_o afterward_o zuingle_a in_o art_n 60._o say_v i_o condemn_v not_o if_o one_o be_v careful_a for_o the_o dead_a do_v implore_v or_o pray_v god_n mercy_n for_o they_o but_o to_o define_v any_o time_n for_o this_o be_v diabolical_a spalata_n l._n 5._o repub._n c._n 8._o n._n 132._o write_v that_o god_n at_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o church_n forgive_v little_a sin_n soon_o after_o death_n but_o not_o long_o after_o thus_o they_o distinguish_v about_o prayer_n before_o the_o dead_a perkins_n in_o apoc._n 2._o tom_n 2._o the_o precept_n of_o repentance_n be_v direct_o give_v to_o the_o elect_a indirect_o to_o the_o reprobate_n et_fw-la tilenus_n in_o syntagm_n c._n 47._o there_o be_v no_o counsel_n infer_v out_o of_o 1._o corint_fw-la 7._o but_o only_a a_o desire_n and_o wish_v of_o one_o desire_v the_o gift_n of_o continency_n touch_v sin_n these_o new_a distinction_n they_o make_v sin_n of_o sin_n that_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o reprobate_n and_o infidel_n not_o to_o the_o faithful_a and_o elect_a that_o it_o be_v venial_a to_o the_o elect_a not_o to_o other_o that_o it_o may_v stand_v with_o justice_n with_o some_o wrestle_a no_o otherwise_o that_o bite_a usury_n be_v condemn_v not_o other_o as_o we_o have_v relate_v l._n 1._o c._n 16._o beside_o perkins_n in_o cathol_n ref_o cont._n 2._o cap._n 1._o say_v that_o in_o justification_n sin_n be_v take_v away_o not_o in_o itself_o but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o person_n or_o as_o rivet_v speak_v count_n tract_n 3._o sect_n 26._o sin_n remain_v in_o part_n not_o whole_o caluin_n in_o joan_n 1._o v._n 29._o sin_n be_v in_o we_o but_o not_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n beza_n in_o 2._o part_n resp_n ad_fw-la coll._n montisb_n p._n 73._o david_n sin_v but_o not_o whole_a but_o as_o he_o be_v not_o regenerate_v p._n 79._o he_o do_v not_o retain_v the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o some_o thing_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pag._n 71._o sin_n cast_v not_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o hinder_v his_o efficacy_n et_fw-fr p._n 87._o it_o make_v the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o sleep_n for_o a_o time_n but_o do_v not_o cast_v he_o of_o pareus_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr amiss_o grat._n c._n 7._o adam_n fall_v not_o as_o he_o be_v predestinate_a but_o as_o he_o be_v to_o be_v predestinate_v he_o lose_v the_o grace_n of_o creation_n but_o not_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n and_o piscator_fw-la in_o thes_n loc_fw-la 20._o the_o elect_n do_v slide_v but_o be_v not_o cast_v down_o touch_v justification_n these_o new_a distinction_n they_o justification_n of_o justification_n frame_v it_o be_v declare_v by_o work_n but_o not_o cause_v it_o forgive_v sin_n but_o take_v they_o not_o away_o it_o make_v that_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v but_o not_o that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o it_o make_v a_o man_n just_a not_o in_o himself_o but_o in_o christ_n and_o other_o such_o like_a as_o may_v be_v see_v lib._n 1._o c._n 17._o moreover_o luther_n in_o zanchius_n de_fw-fr persevere_v to_o 7._o col_fw-fr 128._o say_v when_o peter_n sin_v his_o love_n towards_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v not_o drown_v but_o only_o float_v reineccius_n to_o 4._o arm._n c._n 15._o sanctification_n increase_v and_o decrease_v but_o not_o justification_n kemnice_n in_o locis_fw-la part_n 2._o tit_n de_fw-fr argum._n write_v that_o when_o in_o scripture_n god_n be_v require_v to_o judge_v we_o or_o reward_v we_o according_a to_o our_o justice_n that_o speech_n be_v not_o of_o the_o justice_n of_o person_n but_o of_o our_o cause_n or_o controversy_n with_o other_o man_n and_o again_o that_o same_o you_o be_v clean_a joan._n 13._o and_o you_o be_v wash_v and_o sanctify_v 1._o cor._n 7._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v imputative_o whitaker_n ad_fw-la rat._n 8._o camp_n faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n do_v make_v we_o just_a inchoate_o not_o absolute_o perkins_n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la to_o 1._o distingui●heth_v grace_n into_o that_o which_o repress_v which_o he_o say_v be_v common_a to_o reprobate_n &_o into_o that_o which_o renew_v which_o he_o make_v proper_a to_o the_o elect_a et_fw-la in_o cath_z ref_o cont_n 4._o c._n 4._o say_v adam_n have_v impute_v justice_n according_a to_o the_o substance_n thereof_o but_o not_o according_a to_o imputation_n illyricusin_n cleave_v part_n 2._o tract_n 6._o sin_n be_v abolish_v by_o right_a &_o promise_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o not_o in_o act_n and_o deed_n gesner_n in_o comp_n loco_fw-la 22._o in_o scripture_n those_o be_v call_v i●st_a
word_n wherewith_o here_o or_o there_o it_o signify_v this_o or_o that_o thing_n as_o for_o example_n it_o be_v a_o far_o great_a matter_n to_o deny_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o scripture_n often_o time_n &_o plain_o affirm_v than_o not_o to_o call_v it_o bread_n as_o some_o time_n the_o scripture_n do_v but_o never_o direct_o say_v that_o it_o be_v bread_n whereupon_o spalatensis_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la repub_fw-la c._n 6._o write_v thus_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o seem_a thing_n to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o true_a thing_n which_o the_o appearance_n do_v show_v a_o other_o to_o be_v say_v this_o be_v that_o the_o first_o may_v and_o be_v bear_v withal_o in_o all_o equivocal_a term_n but_o not_o the_o latter_a wherefore_o let_v he_o omit_v these_o kind_n of_o matter_n five_o let_v he_o show_v that_o catholics_n have_v do_v thus_o not_o by_o the_o way_n treat_v of_o other_o matter_n but_o of_o set_a purpose_n as_o protestant_n have_v do_v who_o must_v often_o then_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n in_o plain_a term_n even_o then_o when_o they_o answer_v it_o or_o comment_n upon_o it_o last_o let_v he_o show_v that_o catholics_n have_v be_v force_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o deny_v so_o many_o book_n to_o corrupt_v so_o many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o devise_v so_o many_o and_o so_o incredible_a shift_n as_o we_o have_v show_v the_o protestant_n have_v do_v or_o let_v he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o catholics_n be_v as_o faulty_a in_o this_o kind_n as_o protestant_n be_v moreover_o though_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o some_o catholics_n have_v be_v as_o faulty_a herein_o as_o they_o be_v which_o they_o can_v never_o prove_v yet_o that_o will_v nothing_o prejudice_n the_o chatholik_a church_n because_o her_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o one_o or_o of_o many_o catholics_n but_o the_o common_a of_o they_o all_o but_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v in_o many_o point_v the_o doctrine_n of_o some_o or_o of_o many_o of_o they_o every_o one_o of_o they_o make_v that_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o himself_o gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n whether_o his_o fellow_n believe_v it_o or_o no._n beside_o the_o catholic_a church_n if_o she_o find_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o write_n of_o her_o child_n contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n she_o nether_a allow_v nor_o dissemble_v it_o but_o command_v it_o to_o be_v blot_v out_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o expurgatorie_n indices_fw-la but_o the_o protestant_n either_o approve_v or_o dissemble_v the_o error_n of_o her_o writer_n and_o so_o make_v they_o her_o own_o church_n why_o all_o contradiction_n here_o relate_v may_v be_v abject_a to_o the_o prot._n church_n 19_o the_o four_o scruple_n may_v be_v that_o all_o the_o contradiction_n against_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v here_o rehearse_v out_o of_o protestant_a writer_n be_v not_o make_v nor_o allow_v of_o all_o protestant_n or_o of_o their_o church_n and_o therefore_o all_o of_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o all_o protestant_n or_o to_o their_o church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o very_o many_o of_o the_o contradiction_n against_o holy_a scripture_n here_o set_v down_o be_v find_v in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o other_o writing_n set_v forth_o in_o their_o common_a name_n which_o contradiction_n be_v most_o just_o attribute_v to_o their_o church_n and_o these_o alone_o suffice_v to_o show_v that_o the_o very_a faith_n and_o common_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n be_v direct_o opposite_a both_o to_o the_o word_n and_o sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n second_o almost_o all_o these_o contradiction_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o first_o the_o chief_a and_o famous_a teacher_n guide_n and_o leader_n of_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o either_o protestant_n must_v acknowledge_v these_o contradiction_n or_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o first_o and_o chief_a master_n as_o direct_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n three_o all_o the_o contradiction_n or_o antithesis_n here_o produce_v be_v take_v out_o of_o famous_a writer_n and_o maintainer_n of_o the_o protestant_a faith_n who_o doctrine_n the_o protestant_a church_n have_v not_o public_o condemn_v nor_o compel_v the_o author_n thereof_o to_o recall_v it_o nor_o command_v it_o to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o writing_n and_o therefore_o if_o not_o by_o public_a consent_n yet_o by_o silence_n and_o dissemble_n approve_v it_o and_o so_o as_o i_o say_v before_o make_v it_o her_o own_o four_o protestant_n object_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n whatsoever_o any_o cotholik_a writer_n though_o never_o so_o obscure_a have_v write_v why_o then_o may_v not_o we_o better_a object_n unto_o their_o church_n what_o many_o and_o the_o most_o famous_a of_o their_o writer_n have_v publish_v final_o my_o intention_n in_o this_o work_v not_o to_o show_v the_o contradiction_n of_o this_o or_o that_o protestant_a man_n or_o church_n against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o of_o the_o protestant_n in_o general_a especial_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o famous_a but_o whether_o the_o contradiction_n of_o scripture_n make_v by_o suffice_v and_o though_o they_o can_v not_o yet_o that_o will_v suffice_v many_o and_o famous_a protestant_a writer_n and_o not_o condemn_v but_o dissemble_v by_o their_o church_n be_v to_o be_v object_v to_o their_o church_n or_o no_o these_o point_n ensue_v will_v suffice_v to_o my_o purpose_n first_o that_o the_o commun_n fairh_fw-mi of_o protestant_n be_v in_o many_o and_o weighty_a article_n direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n and_o clear_a meaning_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o which_o in_o diverse_a article_n i_o recite_v out_o of_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o other_o their_o common_a writing_n the_o second_o be_v that_o touch_v many_o other_o matter_n that_o self_n same_o doctrine_n which_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o other_o protestant_n be_v contain_v in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n though_o it_o be_v not_o deliver_v there_o in_o term_n so_o express_o opposite_a to_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o be_v by_o other_o protestant_n the_o three_o be_v that_o much_o of_o that_o protestant_a doctrine_n which_o here_o if_o cite_v as_o opposite_a to_o holy_a scripture_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o common_a belief_n of_o protestant_n albeit_o it_o be_v not_o insert_v in_o their_o confession_n the_o four_o point_n be_v that_o those_o protestant_n who_o word_n i_o allege_v know_v the_o common_a 42._o apol._n anglic_a cont._n 2._o q._n 5._o c._n 8._o l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 42._o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o well_o as_o any_o who_o now_o will_v deny_v or_o reject_v that_o doctrine_n the_o five_o be_v that_o jewel_n whitaker_n feild_n and_o diverse_a other_o protestant_n avouch_v that_o there_o be_v no_o material_a difference_n in_o doctrine_n among_o the_o chief_a protestant_n which_o either_o they_o must_v confess_v to_o befalse_a or_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n which_o here_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o their_o chief_a writer_n the_o sixth_o point_n be_v that_o housoever_o the_o doctrine_n which_o i_o cite_v be_v not_o in_o all_o point_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o protestant_a man_n or_o church_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o i_o say_v protestant_a doctrine_n teach_v and_o maintain_v by_o famous_a protestant_n such_o as_o our_o english_a protestant_n hold_n communion_n withal_o and_o account_v they_o their_o brethren_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o either_o let_v they_o defend_v their_o doctrine_n or_o refuse_v their_o communion_n the_o seven_o point_n be_v that_o whether_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n which_o here_o i_o cite_v as_o opposite_a to_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n or_o belief_n of_o protestant_n or_o no_o this_o alone_a will_v suffice_v to_o my_o purpose_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o chief_a and_o famous_a protestant_a preacher_n and_o leader_n be_v in_o more_o than_o note_n note_n 260._o point_n of_o controversy_n quite_o opposite_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o thereby_o every_o one_o may_v see_v that_o the_o first_o &_o chief_a protestant_a preacher_n do_v not_o teach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o devil_n quite_o contrary_a thereto_o be_v not_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o minister_n of_o the_o devil_n not_o reformer_n but_o deformer_n not_o send_v of_o god_n but_o thrust_v on_o by_o the_o devil_n not_o lighten_v from_o heaven_n but_o blind_v from_o hell_n not_o apostle_n but_o apostatas_fw-la not_o pastor_n but_o wolf_n who_o under_o a_o most_o false_a pretence_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v most_o direct_o impugn_v it_o draw_v cristian_n from_o god_n truth_n to_o the_o devil_n lie_n from_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o catholic_a
church_n to_o the_o den_n of_o thief_n from_o the_o assure_a path_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o open_a way_n of_o damnation_n final_o i_o advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n i_o use_v any_o sharp_a word_n against_o protestant_n i_o intend_v they_o only_o against_o their_o teacher_n and_o leader_n yet_o use_v i_o the_o common_a name_n of_o protestant_n that_o the_o rest_n may_v know_v that_o the_o crime_n which_o i_o object_n unto_o they_o proceed_v of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o thereby_o fly_v and_o reject_v it_o lest_o they_o become_v partaker_n of_o the_o crime_n i_o show_v they_o the_o gulf_n of_o impiety_n into_o which_o their_o guide_n do_v lead_v they_o let_v they_o not_o be_v offend_v with_o i_o that_o i_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o impiety_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o be_v teach_v but_o let_v they_o be_v angry_a with_o their_o teacher_n who_o under_o the_o most_o false_a pretence_n of_o scripture_n and_o god_n word_n have_v thaught_v they_o such_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o so_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o i_o hearty_o pray_v god_n and_o ever_o shall_v that_o he_o open_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v see_v the_o most_o imminent_a and_o grievous_a danger_n wherein_o they_o stand_v and_o avoid_v it_o &_o lighten_v with_o his_o true_a light_n that_o zeal_n which_o they_o have_v to_o his_o word_n 10._o rom._n 10._o lest_o they_o perish_v for_o ever_o with_o they_o who_o have_v zeal_n but_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n whether_o catholik_o or_o protestant_n be_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n first_o chapter_n because_v this_o question_n of_o the_o true_a owner_n be_v how_o important_a this_o question_n be_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o such_o moment_n as_o by_o it_o may_v be_v decide_v all_o controversy_n as_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v and_o withal_o the_o decision_n thereof_o be_v so_o easy_a and_o clear_a as_o every_o one_o may_v perceive_v it_o and_o notwithstanding_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o to_o my_o knowledge_n be_v particular_o handle_v of_o any_o albeit_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v out_o of_o tertullian_n it_o shall_v have_v be_v handle_v before_o any_o question_n of_o scripture_n i_o will_v begin_v first_o with_o it_o and_o because_o protestant_n avouch_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o need_v not_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o either_o catholics_n or_o they_o be_v the_o true_a owner_n thereof_o which_o the_o very_a question_n do_v suppose_v but_o it_o will_v suffice_v against_o they_o that_o i_o show_v that_o according_a to_o all_o reason_n catholics_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o scripture_n rather_o than_o they_o the_o first_o proof_n hereof_o i_o will_v take_v from_o the_o actual_a possession_n the_o first_o title_n for_o cathol_n actual_a possession_n possession_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o catholics_n peacable_o be_v when_o luther_n and_o the_o protestant_n first_o begin_v to_o challenge_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o for_o reason_n teach_v we_o to_o judge_v the_o possessor_n of_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o same_o and_o possession_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a title_n of_o hold_v it_o unless_o the_o contrary_a be_v manifest_o prove_v and_o convince_v as_o we_o see_v daily_o in_o land_n and_o temporal_a good_n and_o otherewise_o the_o dominion_n of_o thing_n will_v be_v uncertain_a among_o man_n whereupon_o the_o law_n teach_v the_o possessor_n to_o plead_v possession_n as_o a_o sufficient_a title_n and_o to_o say_v possideo_fw-la quia_fw-la possideo_fw-la i_o possess_v because_o i_o possess_v but_o protestant_n can_v not_o manifest_o disprove_v no_o nor_o yet_o colourable_o impugn_v the_o right_n of_o the_o catholics_n possession_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o shall_v hereafter_o appear_v therefore_o according_a to_o all_o reason_n catholik_o upon_o this_o title_n of_o their_o possession_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o second_o proof_n i_o will_v take_v from_o the_o catholics_n undoubted_a possession_n second_o title_n peaceable_a possession_n possession_n thereof_o and_o unquestioned_a by_o protestant_n for_o many_o age_n that_o protestant_n do_v not_o for_o many_o age_n call_v the_o catholics_n possession_n of_o the_o scripture_n into_o question_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o many_o and_o plain_a confession_n of_o protestant_n that_o their_o church_n be_v invisible_a before_o luther_n for_o many_o age_n which_o i_o have_v relate_v in_o my_o second_o book_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n c._n 4._o and_o reason_n teach_v we_o to_o account_v he_o the_o true_a owner_n of_o a_o thing_n who_o without_o all_o question_n or_o claim_v of_o any_o have_v hold_v it_o peacable_o for_o many_o age_n together_o whereupon_o the_o law_n allow_v prescription_n of_o certain_a year_n after_o which_o time_n expire_v it_o permit_v not_o the_o possession_n to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n beside_o it_o be_v no_o way_n likely_a that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n will_v suffer_v herself_o to_o be_v bereave_v of_o so_o heavenly_a a_o treasure_n as_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o yet_o not_o once_o in_o any_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n for_o many_o age_n cry_v after_o the_o thief_n or_o challenge_v her_o treasure_n which_o she_o do_v see_v be_v hold_v of_o other_o will_v man_n every_o day_n venture_v their_o life_n for_o save_v or_o recover_v a_o little_a land_n or_o good_n and_o will_v not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o only_a true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o many_o age_n once_o open_a her_o mouth_n to_o challenge_v so_o heavenly_a a_o treasure_n especial_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o protestant_n teach_v the_o only_a 2._o martyr_n in_o disput_fw-la oxon_n p._n 143._o pareus_n coll._n theol._n 3._o disp_n 2._o external_a infallible_a means_n to_o attain_v faith_n and_o as_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o meat_n be_v to_o the_o life_n of_o man_n what_o care_n have_v the_o church_n offo_o great_a a_o treasure_n leave_v unto_o here_o by_o christ_n what_o account_n make_v she_o of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n if_o for_o many_o age_n she_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o challenge_v the_o only_a external_a infallible_a and_o necessary_a mean_n to_o obtain_v they_o will_v the_o primitive_a church_n suffer_v so_o many_o torment_n and_o cruel_a death_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n rather_o than_o loose_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o the_o heathen_n will_v have_v take_v from_o she_o and_o will_v she_o afterward_o suffer_v papist_n too_o take_v it_o from_o she_o without_o mutter_v one_o word_n or_o lay_v claim_n to_o it_o for_o many_o age_n together_o moreover_o how_o have_v she_o faith_n how_o obtain_v she_o salvation_n if_o for_o main_a age_n she_o lose_v the_o only_a external_a infallible_a and_o necessary_a mean_n to_o obtain_v they_o the_o three_o proof_n be_v that_o the_o catholics_n possession_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v far_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o protestant_n possession_n possession_n three_o title_n ancient_a possession_n thereof_o for_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o that_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v the_o first_o and_o ancient_a possessor_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o only_a true_a owner_n of_o the_o same_o because_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n leave_v their_o writing_n first_o and_o iuris_fw-la qui_fw-la prio_fw-la est_fw-la tempore_fw-la potior_fw-la est_fw-la jure_fw-la reg._n iuris_fw-la only_o to_o the_o true_a church_n and_o give_v she_o the_o testament_n and_o last_o will_n of_o christ_n her_o sponse_n so_o that_o the_o true_a christrian_a church_n have_v the_o scripture_n before_o any_o false_a christian_a church_n have_v it_o and_o likewise_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o she_o never_o lose_v it_o since_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o she_o but_o as_o she_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n so_o she_o have_v faithful_o keep_v this_o heavenly_a truth_n deliver_v unto_o she_o in_o write_v and_o consequent_o be_v ancient_a possessor_n of_o the_o scripture_n than_o any_o false_a christian_a church_n can_v be_v and_o this_o reason_n the_o ancient_a christian_n use_v against_o heretic_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o tertullian_n lib._n the_o prescript_n c._n 37._o it_o be_v my_o possession_n i_o possess_v it_o of_o old_a i_o possess_v it_o first_o i_o be_o the_o herie_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o lib._n 4._o cont_n mart._n c._n 4._o i_o say_v my_o bible_n be_v true_a martion_n say_v his._n i_o say_v martion_n bible_n be_v corrupt_v martion_n say_v i_o be_v corrupt_v what_o shall_v end_v our_o controversy_n but_o order_n of_o time_n give_v authority_n to_o that_o which_o be_v find_v to_o be_v ancient_a and_o reject_v that_o which_o be_v late_a for_o in_o that_o falsity_n be_v a_o corruption_n of_o truth_n truth_n must_v needs_o be_v before_o falsity_n
pastor_n as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o say_v book_n c._n 2._o cit_fw-la and_o caluin_n in_o ezechiel_n c._n 3._o v._n 9_o say_v that_o papist_n challenge_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o pretend_v a_o continual_a succession_n and_o indeed_o say_v he_o we_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n and_o who_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o true_a pastor_n of_o god_n church_n be_v true_a owner_n of_o god_n word_n which_o they_o have_v authority_n to_o preach_v thereby_o they_o confess_v that_o catholics_n be_v true_a possessor_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o thus_o write_v luther_n to_o 2._o germ._n fol._n 279._o cite_v by_o scarpius_n in_o eccles_n c._n 6._o we_o confess_v that_o under_o popery_n be_v many_o christian_a good_n yea_o all_o christian_a good_a and_o that_o it_o come_v from_o thence_o to_o us._n namely_o we_o confess_v that_o in_o popery_n be_v true_a holy_a scripture_n true_a baptism_n true_a office_n of_o preach_v true_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n true_a key_n to_o forgive_v sin_n true_a catechism_n nay_o i_o say_v that_o in_o popery_n be_v true_a popery_n the_o kernel_n of_o christianity_n in_o popery_n christianity_n yea_o the_o very_a kernel_n of_o christianity_n and_o many_o great_a saint_n and_o hall_n chalmeley_n and_o batterfeild_n grant_v that_o luther_n write_v thus_o and_o seem_v to_o allow_v it_o luther_n also_o to_o 6._o in_o c._n 28._o genes_n say_v we_o confess_v that_o papist_n have_v the_o church_n because_o they_o have_v baptism_n absolution_n the_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o there_o be_v many_o godly_a man_n amongst_o they_o the_o eight_o proof_n shall_v be_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o such_o stranger_n 8._o title_n confession_n of_o stranger_n as_o nether_a be_v catholik_o nor_o protestant_n for_o as_o vorstius_n write_v in_o antibell_n p._n 181._o jew_n turk_n and_o pagan_n do_v think_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n consist_v chief_o in_o popery_n and_o whitaker_n cont._n 2._o q._n c._n 2._o no_o other_o famous_a church_n can_v be_v name_v in_o these_o latter_a time_n which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o church_n and_o be_v call_v the_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n nether_a let_v any_o think_v that_o such_o as_o want_v faith_n can_v not_o be_v sufficient_a judge_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o albeit_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a judge_n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o be_v they_o sufficient_a in_o question_n of_o fact_n as_o this_o be_v and_o in_o this_o 24._o joseph_n lib._n antiq._n euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 24._o sort_n the_o heathen_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a law_n judge_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o samaritan_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n between_o the_o catholics_n and_o the_o samosatenian_o and_o as_o christian_n can_v judge_v what_o kind_n of_o mahometan_n be_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o alcoran_n though_o they_o think_v not_o the_o alcoran_n to_o contain_v true_a doctrine_n so_o may_v infidel_n judge_v what_o kind_n of_o christian_n be_v true_a owner_n of_o the_o gospel_n though_o they_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o nine_o proof_n may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o agreement_n of_o scripture_n 9_o title_n agreement_n with_o scripture_n the_o cath._n doctrine_n both_o in_o word_n and_o sense_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o shall_v appear_v in_o this_o book_n which_o proof_n though_o take_v alone_o do_v not_o convince_v that_o catholics_n be_v true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o in_o convince_v that_o they_o be_v true_a owner_n rather_o than_o protestant_n who_o so_o far_o disagree_v from_o the_o scripture_n both_o in_o word_n and_o sense_n the_o ten_o proof_n shall_v be_v that_o protestant_n against_o these_o proof_n 10._o title_n weakness_n of_o protest_v proof_n so_o many_a and_o so_o forcible_a proof_n for_o the_o catholics_n can_v bring_v no_o other_o proof_n for_o their_o right_n to_o scripture_n then_o that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o scripture_n which_o argument_n take_v alone_o be_v as_o i_o show_v at_o large_a in_o my_o say_v book_n de_n authore_fw-la etc._n etc._n lib._n 2._o c._n 15._o a_o fond_a sophism_n or_o foularie_n first_o because_o schismatik_n have_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o scripture_n as_o i_o there_o prove_v by_o reason_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a father_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n and_o yet_o be_v no_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o be_v no_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o there_o also_o prove_v second_o for_o protestant_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o have_v the_o true_a doctrine_n thereof_o be_v to_o prove_v one_o unknown_a and_o false_a thing_n by_o a_o other_o as_o unkowne_a and_o false_a which_o be_v not_o to_o prove_v at_o all_o because_o all_o proof_n must_v be_v from_o a_o thing_n more_o know_v three_o they_o neither_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n for_o these_o be_v quite_o against_o they_o as_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o this_o book_n nor_o by_o plain_a inference_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o catholics_n answer_n unto_o all_o their_o proof_n nor_o final_o they_o have_v prove_v any_o thing_n before_o a_o lawful_a judge_n but_o all_o their_o proof_n be_v such_o as_o every_o heretic_n make_v beside_o if_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n do_v prove_v true_a right_n to_o scripture_n it_o far_o more_o make_v for_o catholik_o and_o no_o more_o for_o protestant_n then_o for_o any_o other_o heretic_n out_o of_o all_o which_o have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o chapter_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o if_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n may_v be_v judge_n in_o this_o matter_n catholik_o must_v needs_o be_v count_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o they_o have_v all_o the_o foresay_v title_n than_o the_o which_o both_o few_o and_o weak_a will_v make_v a_o claim_n to_o worldly_a matter_n out_o of_o all_o question_n of_o all_o which_o protestant_n can_v pretend_v none_o but_o the_o last_o second_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o catholik_o be_v the_o true_a end_v if_o cath._n be_v true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n all_o controversy_n be_v end_v owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o sacred_a testament_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v also_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v sin_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o of_o all_o the_o good_n which_o christ_n have_v by_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n bequeath_v to_o his_o church_n for_o undoubted_o all_o these_o thing_n pertain_v to_o they_o to_o who_o christ_n testament_n do_v belong_v three_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o catholik_o be_v true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n protestant_n be_v unjust_a usurper_n of_o they_o as_o jew_n turk_n and_o infidel_n be_v and_o have_v no_o more_o right_a to_o keep_v or_o use_v they_o against_o catholik_o than_o thief_n have_v to_o use_v true_a man_n good_n or_o weapon_n against_o they_o for_o clear_v it_o be_v that_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n be_v opposite_a church_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o foresay_v book_n de_fw-fr authore_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o and_o lib._n 2._o c._n 6._o and_o that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o false_a church_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n be_v give_v and_o belong_v to_o one_o only_a church_n wherefore_o we_o may_v well_o say_v to_o protestant_n as_o tertullian_n the_o prescript_n c._n 37._o say_v to_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n who_o be_v you_o when_o and_o whence_o come_v you_o what_o do_v you_o in_o i_o be_v not_o i_o by_o what_o right_a martion_n luther_n do_v thou_o fall_v my_o wood_n by_o what_o licence_n valentin_n caluin_n do_v thou_o turn_v away_o my_o water_n by_o what_o authority_n apelles_n zuingle_a do_v thou_o charge_v my_o bound_n it_o be_v my_o possession_n what_o do_v you_o stranger_n here_o sow_v and_o feed_v at_o your_o pleasure_n and_o the_o same_o say_v we_o to_o protestant_n let_v they_o first_o show_v what_o right_o they_o have_v to_o scripture_n before_o they_o argue_v out_o of_o they_o let_v they_o render_v we_o our_o weapon_n or_o show_v what_o just_a title_n they_o have_v to_o they_o before_o they_o fight_v with_o they_o against_o us._n for_o as_o the_o same_o tertull._n say_v c._n 15._o here_o we_o first_o stop_v they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o any_o dispute_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v see_v whether_o they_o may_v have_v they_o or_o no_o to_o who_o belong_v the_o scripture_n that_o he_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o it_o to_o who_o it_o appertain_v not_o and_o c._n 19_o the_o
order_n of_o the_o matter_n do_v require_v that_o to_o be_v first_o propose_v which_o alone_o be_v now_o to_o be_v dispute_v four_o who_o be_v the_o faith_n who_o be_v the_o scripture_n four_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o if_o any_o protestant_a will_n notwithstanding_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v judge_v that_o protestant_n be_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o scripture_n rather_o than_o catholik_o he_o will_v give_v that_o judgement_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o great_a moment_n which_o he_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o give_v in_o a_o question_n of_o the_o least_o trifle_n in_o the_o world_n for_o who_o see_v that_o one_o have_v nine_o title_n to_o a_o piece_n of_o ground_n of_o all_o which_o title_n his_o adversary_n have_v no_o pretence_n and_o that_o he_o have_v as_o good_a if_o not_o far_o better_o show_v also_o of_o the_o ten_o title_n as_o his_o adversary_n have_v will_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o adjudge_v the_o land_n to_o his_o adversary_n and_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o possession_n who_o be_v actual_a possessor_n when_o the_o matter_n come_v first_o in_o question_n be_v peaceable_a possessor_n for_o many_o age_n be_v the_o ancient_a possessor_n and_o of_o who_o possession_n no_o this_o note_v this_o beginning_n can_v be_v find_v but_o from_o the_o true_a lord_n and_o from_o who_o his_o adversary_n have_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v who_o lawful_a possession_n thereof_o all_o kind_n of_o adversary_n do_v some_o time_n confess_v and_o put_v his_o adversary_n in_o possession_n who_o can_v pretend_v no_o title_n but_o that_o which_o alone_o suffice_v not_o and_o which_o also_o for_o better_a agree_v to_o the_o ancient_a possessor_n if_o any_o say_v that_o in_o worldly_a matter_n reason_n will_v give_v judgement_n for_o the_o ancient_a possessor_n but_o not_o in_o heavenly_a or_o divine_a matter_n as_o the_o scripture_n be_v i_o demand_v what_o scripture_n what_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o to_o check_v the_o light_n of_o reason_n concern_v the_o true_a possession_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o none_o why_o then_o do_v we_o not_o follow_v reason_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o fact_n concern_v the_o true_a possession_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o beside_o this_o be_v to_o grante_a that_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n with_o catholics_n against_o protestant_n and_o consequent_o that_o to_o be_v a_o protetestant_n one_o must_v first_o cast_v away_o reason_n even_o in_o a_o matter_n which_o be_v under_o the_o reach_n of_o reason_n as_o be_v who_o be_v the_o true_a owner_n of_o the_o scripture_n moreover_o the_o very_a end_n of_o this_o balance_n be_v no_o other_o then_o to_o show_v that_o if_o we_o will_v follow_v the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o true_a prudence_n we_o ought_v to_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o reject_v the_o protestant_n and_o that_o to_o do_v otherwise_o be_v to_o cast_v away_o reason_n and_o prudence_n and_o to_o become_v unreasonable_a and_o imprudent_a man_n and_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v we_o a_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o only_o above_o reason_n but_o even_o contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o that_o also_o in_o matter_n subject_a to_o reason_n and_o that_o we_o can_v not_o become_v faithful_a man_n but_o we_o must_v first_o become_v unreasonable_a man_n not_o receive_v his_o light_n of_o faith_n before_o we_o put_v out_o his_o light_n of_o reason_n wherewith_o he_o have_v make_v we_o like_a to_o himself_o and_o superior_n to_o beast_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o far_o in_o all_o reason_n and_o prudence_n catholik_o be_v above_o protestant_n for_o the_o right_a claim_n or_o just_a possession_n of_o holy_a scripture_n now_o let_v we_o see_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o book_n how_o far_o also_o they_o be_v above_o they_o for_o the_o letter_n or_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o second_o book_n how_o far_o they_o be_v above_o they_o for_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o a_o sum_n of_o the_o more_o manifest_a contradiction_n between_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o protestant_n with_o the_o chapter_n and_o article_n where_o they_o may_v be_v read_v more_o at_o large_a which_o will_v much_o serve_v to_o understand_v and_o remember_v better_o those_o which_o follow_v chapter_n ii_o of_o god._n scripture_n thou_o be_v not_o a_o god_n that_o will_v iniquity_n iniquity_n god_n will_v not_o iniquity_n he_o will_v iniquity_n protestant_n god_n will_v have_v iniquity_n to_o be_v commit_v god_n will_v iniquity_n with_o a_o hide_a will_n he_o will_v sin_n he_o will_v sin_n to_o be_v do_v he_o will_v have_v adam_n to_o sin_n to_o fall_v to_o revoult_v see_v more_o c._n 2._o article_n 1._o scripture_n our_o just_a lord_n in_o the_o mid_n thereof_o will_v not_o do_v iniquity_n god_n do_v not_o iniquity_n iniquity_n protestant_n god_n work_v evil_a in_o we_o the_o evil_n of_o sin_n be_v iniquity_n he_o do_v iniquity_n do_v by_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o god_n david_n adultery_n be_v proper_o god_n work_v judas_n his_o treachery_n be_v his_o proper_a work_n as_o the_o vocation_n of_o s._n paul_n pharaoh_n his_o cruelty_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n counsel_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n then_o the_o egyptian_n favour_n towards_o his_o people_n god_n procure_v sin_n itself_o see_v more_o c._n 2._o art_n 4._o scripture_n he_o god_n have_v command_v no_o man_n to_o do_v impious_o sin_n god_n command_v not_o to_o sin_n he_o command_v to_o sin_n protestant_n god_n bid_v satan_n go_v to_o be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n by_o god_n commandment_n satan_n be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n god_n give_v he_o a_o plain_a commandment_n to_o deceive_v satan_n be_v send_v to_o deceive_v by_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n see_v art_n 6._o scripture_n god_n be_v not_o a_o tempter_n of_o evil_n and_o he_o tempt_v no_o sin_n god_n tempete_v not_o to_o sin_n man_n protestant_n god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o temptation_n god_n move_v sin_n he_o tempt_v to_o sin_n the_o offender_n to_o sin_n push_v the_o jew_n to_o kill_v his_o son_n stir_v up_o the_o thief_n will_v to_o kill_v drive_v to_o sin_n by_o tempt_a incline_v the_o will_n of_o wicked_a man_n into_o grievous_a sin_n see_v more_o art_n 7._o scripture_n thou_o hate_v all_o that_o work_n iniquity_n protestant_n god_n be_v angry_a with_o the_o elect_a when_o they_o sin_n but_o impious_a god_n hate_v all_o that_o work_n iniquity_n he_o hate_v not_o all_o such_o god_n justifi_v not_o the_o impious_a he_o justifi_v the_o impious_a never_o hate_v they_o he_o hate_v all_o iniquity_n but_o not_o all_o in_o who_o iniquity_n be_v see_v art_n 9_o scripture_n he_o that_o justifi_v the_o impious_a be_v abominable_a before_o god_n protestant_n see_v god_n forbid_v to_o justify_v the_o impious_a prou._n 17._o can_v he_o be_v say_v to_o do_v that_o right_o which_o himself_o forbid_v right_o albeit_o we_o be_v wicked_a yet_o be_v we_o account_v of_o the_o lord_n for_o just_a a_o wicked_a man_n may_v be_v pronounce_v just_a according_a to_o the_o gospel_n christ_n can_v justify_v such_o as_o be_v impious_a and_o want_v all_o good_a work_n see_v more_o art_n 10._o scripture_n against_o aaron_n god_n be_v exceed_o angry_a they_o god_n be_v angry_a with_o the_o faithful_a when_o they_o sin_n he_o be_v not_o angry_a with_o they_o god_n be_v please_v with_o good_a work_n he_o be_v not_o please_v with_o they_o god_n be_v serve_v with_o good_a work_n he_o be_v not_o serve_v with_o they_o he_o will_v have_v destroy_v he_o protestant_n god_n always_o withould_v his_o anger_n from_o the_o faithful_a god_n be_v not_o angry_a with_o sinner_n see_v art_n 11._o scripture_n we_o do_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v before_o he_o with_o such_o host_n god_n be_v please_v protestant_n god_n care_v not_o for_o work_n we_o foolish_o feign_v that_o god_n be_v much_o delight_v with_o our_o work_n there_o be_v no_o such_o god_n which_o be_v delight_v with_o our_o good_a work_n to_o wash_v dish_n and_o to_o preach_v be_v all_o one_o as_o for_o please_a god_n see_v more_o art_n 13._o scripture_n by_o fasting_n and_o prayer_n serve_v god_n day_n and_o night_n protestant_n the_o true_a god_n be_v not_o serve_v with_o work_n there_o be_v one_o only_a worship_n please_v to_o god_n to_o wit_n true_a faith_n god_n be_v serve_v by_o faith_n only_o faith_n be_v the_o only_a true_a worship_n of_o god_n see_v art_n 14._o scripture_n phinees_n stand_v &_o pacify_v and_o the_o slaughter_n cease_v keep_v god_n be_v pacify_v by_o good_a work_n he_o be_v not_o pacify_v by_o they_o god_n will_v have_v his_o commandment_n keep_v he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o keep_v protestant_n there_o be_v no_o such_o god_n that_o can_v be_v pacify_v with_o our_o good_a work_n the_o work_n which_o i_o do_v according_a to_o god_n law_n
be_v not_o whash_v by_o baptism_n see_v artic_a 7._o scripture_n we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o also_o the_o rest_n as_o by_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o unto_o all_o man_n to_o condemnation_n protestant_n original_a sin_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o they_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v bear_v saintes_n see_v art_n 9_o scripture_n in_o what_o then_o be_v you_o baptize_v who_o say_v in_o ihons_n he_o some_o baptize_v in_o saint_n ihons_n baptism_n not_o in_o that_o baptism_n some_o know_v not_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o know_v of_o he_o baptism_n protestant_n it_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o they_o be_v never_o baptize_v in_o ihons_n outward_a baptism_n see_v more_o art_n 11._o scripture_n but_o they_o say_v to_o he_o nay_o nether_a have_v we_o hear_v whither_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n protestant_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o jew_n have_v hear_v nothing_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n see_v more_o art_n 12._o chapter_n xi_o of_o the_o eucharist_n scripture_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o his_o body_n blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o protestant_n the_o sacramental_a bread_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n although_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o true_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n some_o do_v urge_v that_o the_o lord_n bread_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o say_v the_o contrary_n see_v more_o art_n 1._o scripture_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o eat_v christ_n flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o protestant_n christ_n do_v not_o command_v his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v eat_v not_o to_o be_v eat_v but_o symbolical_a bread_n we_o eat_v and_o drink_v nothing_o but_o bread_n and_o wine_n christ_n corporal_a flesh_n can_v be_v no_o way_n eat_v see_v more_o art_n 2._o meat_n his_o flesh_n true_o meat_n scripture_n my_o flesh_n be_v true_o meat_n protestant_n it_o be_v far_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v true_o meat_n not_o true_o meat_n eat_v see_v art_n 2._o cit_fw-la scripture_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n blood_n of_o the_o new_a testamento_fw-la be_v drink_v not_o to_o be_v drink_v the_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v sacrifice_n new_a testament_n protestant_n christ_n do_v not_o give_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o drink_v see_v art_n 3._o scripture_n this_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n protestant_n that_o cup_n be_v not_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o cup_n be_v not_o the_o new_a testament_n itself_o see_v more_o art_n 4._o scripture_n in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o there_o be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n protestant_n there_o be_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n remain_v in_o the_o none_o there_o be_v none_o church_n see_v more_o art_n 11._o scripture_n this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n us._n the_o chalice_n shed_v for_o us._n which_o chalice_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o greek_a text_n shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o protestant_n the_o chalice_n be_v not_o shed_v for_o us._n see_v more_o art_n 6._o none_o not_o shed_v for_o us._n we_o have_v a_o altar_n we_o have_v none_o scripture_n we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o eat_v who_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n protestant_n paul_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o altar_n in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o altar_n altar_n have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n see_v more_o art_n 24._o scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n sacrifice_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n sacrifice_v not_o sacrifice_v shall_v sacrifice_v he_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n at_o even_o protestant_n the_o holy_a bible_n no_o where_o teach_v that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v immolate_a and_o sacrifice_v the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v no_o sacrifice_n see_v more_o art_n 13._o of_o the_o other_z sacrament_n chapter_n xii_o scripture_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v not_o man_n can_v forgive_v sin_n they_o can_v not_o protestant_n man_n do_v not_o forgive_v sin_n who_o attribute_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o creature_n rob_v god_n of_o his_o glory_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n alone_o to_o remit_v sin_n and_o so_o proper_a as_o he_o communicate_v this_o glory_n to_o none_o see_v more_o art_n 1._o scripture_n confess_v your_o sin_n one_o to_o a_o other_o it_o sin_z to_o be_v confess_v to_o man_n not_o to_o be_v confess_v to_o they_o grace_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n not_o by_o it_o protestant_n god_n require_v not_o this_o confession_n to_o man_n confession_n of_o sin_n be_v forbid_v nether_a christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n will_v command_v it_o see_v art_n 2._o scripture_n resuscitate_a the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o my_o hand_n protestant_n grace_n be_v not_o give_v by_o the_o external_a sign_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n imposition_n of_o hand_n of_o itself_o have_v no_o efficacy_n but_o the_o effect_n depend_v of_o god_n alone_o see_v more_o art_n 3._o scripture_n every_o one_o that_o dismiss_v his_o wife_n and_o marry_v a_o avoil_v to_o marry_v after_o diverce_n be_v advantrie_n not_o advantrie_n man_n die_v be_v to_o be_v avoil_v other_o commit_v advoutrie_n protestant_n who_o dismiss_v his_o wife_n for_o whoredom_n and_o marry_v a_o other_o do_v not_o commit_v advoutrie_n see_v more_o art_n 6._o scripture_n be_v any_o man_n sick_a among_o you_o let_v he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o anoil_v he_o with_o oil_n protestant_n the_o priest_n be_v command_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v not_o to_o be_v not_o anoile_v those_o that_o die_v see_v more_o art_n 7._o chapter_n xiii_o of_o faith_n scripture_n this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o work_n faith_n be_v a_o work_n who_o he_o have_v send_v protestant_n faith_n be_v no_o work_n it_o be_v false_a that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_v not_o to_o work_v work_n see_v more_o art_n 1._o scripture_n and_o now_o there_o remain_v faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n hope_n i'faith_o distinct_a from_o hope_n these_o three_o etc._n etc._n protestant_n who_o wnderstand_v not_o that_o faith_n hope_n and_o distinct_a not_o distinct_a charity_n be_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n will_v be_v force_v to_o let_v pass_v many_o knot_n in_o scripture_n unloose_a see_v more_o art_n 7._o scripture_n and_o now_o there_o remain_v faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n inferior_a i'faith_o inferior_a to_o charity_n not_o inferior_a these_o three_o but_o the_o great_a of_o these_o be_v charity_n protestant_n faith_n be_v great_a than_o charity_n faith_n be_v better_a more_o worthy_a more_o noble_a than_o charity_n see_v more_o art_n 7._o scripture_n of_o the_o prince_n also_o many_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o for_o confession_n faith_n without_o confession_n the_o pharise_n do_v not_o confess_v protestant_n true_a faith_n can_v no_o more_o be_v separate_v from_o confession_n help_v not_o without_o confession_n faith_n of_o christ_n godhead_n help_v of_o mouth_n than_o fire_n from_o heat_n see_v more_o art_n 9_o scripture_n these_o be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n protestant_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v one_o person_n which_o be_v not_o help_v not_o god_n and_o man_n will_v help_v none_o see_v more_o art_n 3._o scripture_n of_o the_o prince_n also_o many_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o charity_n faith_n without_o charity_n for_o the_o pharise_n do_v not_o confess_v for_o they_o love_v the_o glory_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n protestant_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o believe_v where_o charity_n want_v charity_n not_o without_o charity_n true_a faith_n can_v no_o more_o be_v without_o work_n than_o fire_n without_o heat_n see_v more_o art_n 8._o scripture_n faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a dead_a i'faith_o some_o time_n dead_a never_o dead_a protestant_n who_o believe_v that_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v dead_a believe_v against_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n true_a faith_n can_v never_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dead_a see_v more_o art_n 10._o scripture_n without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n justify_v i'faith_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o necessary_a faith_n without_o work_n save_v not_o it_o save_v belief_n do_v justify_v protestant_n
virtue_n their_o power_n while_o they_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o power_n to_o work_v miracle_n steal_v away_o their_o perfect_a justice_n in_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v perfect_o just_a or_o perfect_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n rob_v they_o of_o their_o honour_n because_o they_o honor._n honor._n deny_v that_o we_o may_v honour_v they_o imitate_v they_o pray_v to_o they_o or_o pray_v to_o god_n in_o their_o name_n they_o spoil_v they_o dignity_n dignity_n of_o their_o dignity_n in_o say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o any_o good_a unto_o we_o for_o their_o merit_n or_o good_a deed_n they_o bereave_v knowledge_n knowledge_n they_o of_o their_o knowledge_n in_o say_v that_o they_o know_v not_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v on_o earth_n they_o rob_v they_o of_o charity_n charity_n their_o charity_n because_o they_o say_v that_o they_o pray_v not_o for_o we_o either_o in_o general_a or_o in_o particular_a have_v no_o care_n of_o we_o not_o exercise_v any_o office_n of_o charity_n towards_o us._n final_o they_o happiness_n happiness_n take_v from_o they_o their_o heavenly_a felicity_n because_o they_o teach_v that_o they_o enjoy_v not_o that_o until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o heaven_n now_o let_v we_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v on_o earth_n and_o first_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n chapter_n iv_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o scripture_n art_fw-la i._o whether_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n peter_z 3._o vers_n 16._o as_o our_o most_o dear_a understand_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v brother_n paul_n according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n give_v he_o have_v write_v to_o you_o as_o also_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v in_o they_o of_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o which_o be_v certain_a thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a deprave_v catholik_o express_o deny_v d._n stapleton_n in_o joan._n 17._o v._n 20._o catholics_n deny_v that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o clear_a protestant_n express_o affirm_v whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 1._o q._n 4._o c._n 3._o p._n 337._o peter_n say_v not_o that_o paul_n epistle_n be_v obscure_a no_o nor_o that_o there_o be_v some_o obscure_a thing_n in_o paul_n epistle_n and_o c._n 4._o p._n 340._o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v declare_v in_o his_o whole_a word_n and_o scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v easy_a the_o same_o he_o say_v p._n 341._o of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o the_o universal_a scripture_n and_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n luther_n l._n de_fw-la seru_fw-la arbit_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 426._o it_o be_v spread_v abroad_o by_o hard_o no_o place_n of_o scripture_n hard_o the_o impious_a sophister_n that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n obscure_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o lay_v open_a fol._n 427._o there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o left_a obscure_a or_o ambiguous_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v bring_v into_o most_o clear_a light_n by_o the_o word_n and_o declare_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n whatsoever_o be_v in_o scripture_n and_o fol._n 440._o i_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a sripture_n i_o will_v not_o have_v any_o part_n of_o it_o to_o be_v say_v to_o be_v obscure_a the_o like_a he_o have_v postilla_fw-la in_o festo_fw-la s._n jacobi_fw-la fol._n 430._o and_o cont._n cocleum_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 410._o never_o any_o thing_n be_v utter_v more_o simple_o more_o pure_o more_o clear_o more_o easy_o than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n praefat._n assert_v art_n the_o scripture_n be_v by_o itself_o scriture_n no_o book_n more_o clear_a than_o the_o scriture_n the_o most_o certain_a the_o most_o easy_a the_o most_o clear_a interpreter_n of_o itself_o prove_v judge_a and_o lightning_n all_o thing_n and_o in_o psalm_n 37._o to_o 3._o fol._n 10._o if_o any_o of_o they_o say_v that_o we_o need_v the_o father_n interpretation_n the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a thou_o shall_v answer_v that_o be_v false_a no_o book_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v most_o clear_o write_v then_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o compare_v to_o all_o other_o book_n be_v like_o the_o sun_n before_o all_o other_o light_n gerlachius_n disputat_fw-la 1._o tom_n 1._o pag._n 9_o we_o say_v that_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o it_o need_v no_o interpretation_n at_o all_o zanchius_n de_fw-fr scriptura_fw-la tom_fw-mi 8._o col_fw-fr 408._o how_o then_o can_v the_o scripture_n be_v say_v obscure_a in_o any_o part_n thereof_o col_fw-fr 409._o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a in_o no_o part_n as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v much_o less_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o l._n 1._o epistol_n pag._n 98._o the_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n from_o whence_o the_o decree_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v draw_v be_v so_o plain_a and_o manifest_a as_o they_o need_v no_o more_o diligent_a or_o clear_a exposition_n serranus_n count_v hayum_n part_n 3._o p._n 267._o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o ambiguity_n or_o obscurity_n in_o the_o matter_n or_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o p._n 269._o that_o the_o lord_n have_v plain_o lay_v open_a in_o the_o scripture_n all_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n many_o more_o of_o their_o like_a say_n may_v be_v see_v in_o my_o latin_a book_n cap._n 4._o art_n 1._o conference_n of_o the_o foresay_v word_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o that_o there_o be_v some_o obscure_a thing_n in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n that_o the_o scripture_n the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v easy_a that_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o it_o need_v no_o interpretation_n at_o all_o that_o no_o part_n of_o it_o be_v obscure_a that_o all_o thing_n be_v clear_a whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o word_n and_o declare_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o easy_a and_o clear_a interpreter_n of_o itself_o that_o no_o book_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o be_v compare_v to_o they_o it_o be_v like_o the_o sun_n to_o other_o light_n which_o be_v so_o manifest_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n themselves_n sometime_o confess_v it_o see_v lib._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la ii_o whether_o scripture_n can_n be_v understand_v without_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n scripture_n express_o denieth._n 2._o peter_n 1._o v._o 20._o understanding_n this_o first_o that_o no_o prophetie_n ourselves_o scripture_n not_o understand_v of_o ourselves_o or_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n be_v make_v by_o private_a interpretation_n matth._n 13._o v._n 11._o to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o to_o they_o it_o be_v not_o give_v luc._n 24._o v._n 45._o then_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n catholik_o express_o deny_v d._n stapleton_n l._n 11._o de_fw-la principijs_fw-la c._n 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n of_o who_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v ask_v and_o give_v be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o protestant_n express_o affirm_v whitaker_n l._n 1._o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la c._n 12._o sect_n 8._o the_o scripture_n may_v ghost_n scripture_n not_o understand_v by_o only_o read_v without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v know_v by_o only_a read_n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o sect_n 16._o i_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v understand_v before_o faith_n and_o without_o faith_n again_o but_o if_o thou_o think_v that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v understand_v at_o all_o without_o peculiar_a lightning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thou_o be_v in_o a_o great_a error_n and_o controu_n 1._o q._n 6._o c._n 13._o for_o so_o much_o as_o appertain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o letter_n the_o church_n have_v no_o privilege_n morton_n in_o apol._n part_n 2._o l._n 5._o c._n 10._o any_o one_o though_o never_o so_o scripture_n any_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n so_o impious_a may_v search_v the_o scripture_n to_o knowledge_n though_o not_o to_o wisdom_n that_o be_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n though_o not_o to_o the_o attain_v of_o salvation_n beza_n l._n de_fw-la notis_fw-la eccles_n vol._n 3._o p._n 137._o but_o for_o to_o understand_v what_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n have_v in_o sum_n think_v and_o think_v of_o every_o article_n of_o our_o religion_n there_o need_v only_o a_o wit_n not_o whole_o dull_a
threat_n of_o death_n under_o the_o only_a condition_n of_o incredulity_n those_o promise_n and_o threat_n alone_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o evangelicall_a all_o other_o be_v mix_v partly_o evangelical_a partly_o legal_a the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o if_o we_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n we_o must_v keep_v the_o commandment_n that_o patience_n be_v necessary_a for_o to_o receive_v the_o promise_n that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v god_n that_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v necessary_a to_o life_n that_o unless_o we_o have_v penance_n we_o shall_v perish_v that_o if_o we_o live_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n we_o shall_v die_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o the_o gospel_n promise_v salvation_n even_o to_o those_o that_o have_v no_o good_a work_n at_o all_o that_o it_o require_v no_o good_a work_n to_o salvation_n offer_v life_n without_o condition_n of_o any_o work_n that_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v absolute_a in_o respect_n of_o work_n be_v not_o conditional_a that_o the_o ghosdell_n require_v only_o the_o acceptance_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v require_v only_o belief_n to_o life_n only_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n as_o some_o time_n the_o protestant_n themselves_o confess_v it_o see_v lib._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la vii_o whether_o the_o gospel_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n scripture_n express_o denieth._n rom._n 3._o v._n 31._o do_v we_o then_o destroy_v the_o law_n by_o faith_n god_n forbid_v law_n the_o gospel_n not_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n but_o we_o do_v establish_v the_o law_n gal._n 3._o v._n 21._o be_v the_o law_n then_o against_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n god_n forbid_v matthew_n 5._o vers_fw-la 18._o do_v not_o think_v that_o i_o be_o come_v to_o break_v the_o law_n or_o the_o prophet_n i_o be_o not_o come_v to_o break_v but_o to_o fulfil_v catholik_o express_o deny_v s._n thomas_n 1._o 2._o quaest_n 17._o art_n 3._o something_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o other_o by_o power_n as_o the_o whole_a tree_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o seed_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o new_a law_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o old_a protestant_n express_o affirm_v confessio_fw-la heluet._n c._n 13._o the_o gospel_n true_o be_v opposite_a to_o law_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n work_v wrath_n and_o denounce_v malediction_n the_o gospel_n preach_v grace_n and_o benediction_n illyricus_n in_o sacrae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la part_n 2._o tract_n 1._o eol_n 10._o there_o be_v twoe_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n and_o they_o of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o nature_n true_o contrary_a col._n 11._o this_o sure_o be_v the_o key_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o divinity_n to_o know_v that_o in_o contrary_n twoe_o maie●_n to_o heaven_n &_o those_o contrary_n it_o be_v contain_v a_o twofould_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n and_o a_o double_a way_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o plain_o contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o col._n 39_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n of_o themselves_o whole_o fight_v one_o with_o the_o other_o these_o doctrine_n fight_v but_o the_o law_n be_v the_o inferior_a yield_v to_o the_o gospel_n the_o superior_a and_o so_o the_o one_o contradictory_n fall_v the_o other_o obide_v true_a and_o tract_n 6._o col_fw-fr 547._o 551._o he_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n correct_v the_o law_n luther_n in_o gal_n 4._o f._n 373._o let_v the_o godly_a learn_fw-mi that_o christ_n and_o the_o law_n be_v twoe_o contrary_a all_o together_o incompatible_a scusselburg_n tom_n 7._o catal._n haeret._n p._n 446._o true_a it_o be_v entire_a and_o perfect_a obedience_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v say_v if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n but_o contrariwise_o there_o be_v full_a power_n give_v to_o i_o to_o law_n protestant_n mitigate_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n interpret_v or_o mitigate_v this_o rigour_n wherefore_o i_o interpret_v and_o mitigate_v it_o thus_o perfect_a obedience_n be_v necessary_a to_o one_o that_o be_v to_o be_v save_v to_o wit_n either_o his_o own_o or_o a_o other_o man_n and_o p._n 446._o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n correct_v and_o amend_v the_o say_n of_o the_o law_n caluin_n 2._o instit_fw-la c._n 9_o §_o 4._o paul_n make_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o vallada_fw-la in_o apolog._n count_v episcop_n luzon_n c._n 30._o luther_n speak_v not_o simple_o of_o moses_n but_o of_o moses_n opposite_a to_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v of_o the_o law_n opposite_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o see_v all_o protestant_n think_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n be_v this_o our_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o our_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o must_v needs_o all_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v quite_o contrary_a or_o contradictory_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n whereupon_o beza_n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la count_v castel_n vol._n 1._o p._n 393._o write_v in_o this_o sort_n these_o be_v contrary_a unless_o you_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n you_o shall_v die_v and_z albeit_o you_o do_v they_o not_o yet_o if_o you_o believe_v you_o shall_v live_v whereof_o the_o first_o they_o say_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n the_o second_o of_o the_o gospel_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o destroy_v but_o establish_v the_o law_n that_o god_n promise_n be_v not_o against_o the_o law_n that_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o break_v the_o law_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v true_o opposite_a to_o the_o law_n that_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n be_v twoe_o doctrine_n of_o their_o nature_n true_o contrary_a plain_o contrary_a and_o fight_v one_o with_o the_o other_o that_o the_o gospel_n correct_v the_o law_n that_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o key_n of_o all_o protestant_a divinity_n and_o that_o protestant_n have_v full_a power_n to_o mitigate_v the_o rigour_n of_o god_n law_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n as_o protestant_n some_z time_n confess_v it_o see_v l._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la viii_o whether_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n do_v command_v faith_n in_o christ_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n john_n 1._o v._o 45._o he_o who_o moses_n in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n christ_n moses_n in_o the_o law_n write_v of_o christ_n write_v of_o we_o have_v find_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n of_o nazareth_n c._n 5._o v._n 45._o for_o if_o you_o do_v believe_v moses_n you_o will_v perhaps_o believe_v i_o also_o for_o of_o i_o he_o have_v write_v luc._n 24._o v._n 27._o and_o beginning_n from_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n law_n write_a of_o christ_n in_o the_o law_n he_o do_v interpret_v to_o they_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v concern_v he_o and_o v._o 44._o all_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o psalm_n of_o i_o act._n 3._o v._n 22._o moses_n indeed_o say_v that_o a_o prophet_n shall_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n raise_v up_o to_o you_o of_o your_o brethren_n as_o myself_o him_n christ_n moses_n command_v to_o bear_v christ_n you_o shall_v hear_v according_a to_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o he_o shall_v speak_v to_o you_o c._n 26._o v._n 23._o say_v nothing_o beside_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o prophet_n do_v speak_v shall_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o moses_n if_o christ_n be_v passable_a etc._n etc._n see_v c._n 28._o v._n 23._o catholik_o express_o affirm_v c._n bellarm._n lib._n 4._o justif_n c._n 4._o every_o where_o in_o the_o gospel_n we_o read_v that_o diverse_a mystery_n be_v fulfil_v in_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v so_o write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n in_o gal._n 3._o to_o 2._o the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n in_o christ_n christ_n the_o law_n know_v not_o christ_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v not_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o law_n teach_v not_o faith_n in_o christ_n the_o mediator_n god_n and_o man_n which_o faith_n the_o law_n never_o know_v pareus_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr justif_a c._n 16._o faith_n be_v no_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v not_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o l._n 2._o c._n 4._o the_o law_n know_v nothing_o
of_o faith_n in_o christ_n of_o justify_v faith_n of_o faith_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o like_a have_v amb_v apud_fw-la hospin_n in_o concord_n discordi_fw-la fol._n 140._o beza_n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la count_v cast_v l._n vol._n 1._o p._n 393._o there_o be_v no_o mention_n in_o the_o law_n of_o this_o benefit_n of_o free_a redemption_n by_o christ_n for_o the_o declaration_n of_o this_o will_n belong_v to_o a_o other_o part_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v call_v the_o gospel_n apol._n conf._n augustan_n c._n de_fw-fr justific_n the_o gospel_n preach_v justice_n of_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o the_o law_n do_v not_o teach_v the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o moses_n write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n that_o moses_n write_v thing_n concern_v christ_n that_o moise_n command_v the_o people_n to_o hear_v christ_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o law_n never_o know_v faith_n in_o christ_n that_o moses_n command_v not_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o the_o law_n know_v nothing_o of_o faith_n in_o christ_n that_o in_o the_o law_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o free_a redemption_n in_o christ_n that_o the_o law_n teach_v nothing_o of_o faith_n in_o christ_n art_fw-la ix_o whether_o any_o unwritten_a word_n or_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n 2._o thessaly_n 2._o v._n 15._o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n hold_v tradition_n not_o write_v to_o be_v hold_v which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 4._o the_o holy_a council_n do_v with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n reverent_o receive_v and_o honour_v tradition_n belong_v to_o faith_n or_o manner_n as_o either_o deliver_v by_o christ_n mouth_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o continual_a succession_n conserve_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n cont._n 1._o q._n 3._o cap._n 10._o we_o care_v not_o for_o unwritten_a hold_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v tradition_n and_o contro_n 2._o q._n 5._o c._n 18._o we_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o word_n then_o that_o which_o be_v write_v and_o what_o doctrine_n soever_o be_v not_o write_v we_o hold_v for_o bastard_n doctrine_n perkins_n in_o cathol_n ref_o contr._n 20._o c._n 2._o we_o acknowledge_v the_o only_o write_v word_n of_o god_n luther_n postil_n in_o ferias_fw-la s._n stephani_fw-la nothing_o be_v to_o be_v affirm_v scripture_n nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n jacobus_n andreae_n l._n cont_n hosium_n p._n 169._o that_o faith_n be_v no_o faith_n but_o a_o uncertain_a opinion_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o a_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n wigand_n apud_fw-la scusselb_n to_o 7._o catal._n haeret._n p._n 681._o only_o those_o doctrine_n who_o very_a word_n or_o equivalent_a for_o sense_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v teach_v and_o deliver_v in_o the_o church_n caluin_n in_o gratulat_fw-la ad_fw-la praecentorem_fw-la pag._n 377._o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n and_o count_v versipellem_fw-la pagin_v 353._o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n beza_n in_o rom._n 1._o v._n 17._o christian_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o object_n of_o this_o faith_n than_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n etad_n reprehend_v castell_n p._n 503._o whosoever_o beleive_v in_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n that_o which_o be_v not_o write_v i_o say_v he_o embrace_v opinion_n for_o faith_n and_o a_o idol_n for_o god_n vallada_fw-la in_o apol._n cont_n episc_n luzon_n c._n 13._o in_o all_o the_o holy_a word_n no_o speech_n of_o a_o unwritten_a word_n scripture_n there_o be_v no_o speech_n of_o a_o unwritten_a word_n daneus_fw-la controu_n 7._o pag._n 1350._o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v one_o only_o to_o wit_n the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o only_o write_v hospinian_n part_n 2._o histor_n sacram._n fol._n 23._o the_o magistrate_n of_o zurich_n command_v that_o hereafter_o nothing_o shall_v be_v propose_v or_o preach_v in_o their_o church_n but_o the_o pure_a fine_a word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o tradition_n as_o well_o they_o which_o be_v learn_v by_o word_n as_o they_o which_o be_v learn_v by_o writing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v catholics_n teach_v the_o same_o protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o only_o write_v doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v teach_v nothing_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o be_v write_v only_o the_o pure_a fine_a write_a word_n to_o be_v teach_v no_o object_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v write_v nothing_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o in_o very_a word_n or_o in_o equivalent_a sense_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n no_o speech_n of_o unwritten_a word_n that_o they_o care_v not_o for_o unwritten_a tradition_n a_o sum_n of_o this_o chapter_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o scripture_n what_o we_o have_v rehearse_v in_o this_o chapter_n do_v clear_o show_v that_o protestant_n do_v far_o otherwise_o judge_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o catholik_o do_v for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n together_o with_o catholik_o teach_v that_o in_o it_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v without_o the_o light_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v or_o contain_v a_o law_n that_o it_o do_v preach_v penance_n and_o good_a work_n reprove_v sin_n promise_v salvation_n under_o condition_n of_o good_a work_n and_o be_v not_o contrary_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n command_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o protestant_n defend_v all_o the_o contrary_a they_o show_v also_o that_o protestant_n steal_v from_o the_o scripture_n scripture_n protestant_n steal_v from_o scripture_n her_o excellency_n wherewith_o she_o surpass_v the_o capacity_n of_o man_n wit_n and_o from_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o contain_v any_o law_n preach_v penance_n or_o good_a work_n reprove_v sin_n promise_v salvation_n upon_o condition_n of_o well_o do_v and_o agreement_n with_o god_n law_n whereby_o we_o see_v what_o a_o libertin_n gospel_n they_o bring_v in_o to_o wit_n such_o as_o contain_v protestant_n libertin_n gospel_n of_o protestant_n no_o law_n preach_v no_o penance_n or_o good_a work_n reprove_v no_o sin_n promise_v salvation_n without_o all_o condition_n of_o well_o do_v and_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o steal_v from_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o it_o command_v faith_n in_o christ_n and_o final_o they_o take_v away_o all_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n chapter_n v._o of_o saint_n peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n art_fw-la i._o whether_o s._n peter_n be_v first_o of_o the_o apostle_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n mathew_n 10._o v._o 2._o and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n s._n peter_n first_o of_o the_o apostle_n apostle_n be_v these_o the_o first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v c._n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 18._o peter_n be_v put_v first_o by_o reason_n his_o dignity_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n contr._n 3._o q._n 5._o c._n 3._o wheresoever_o mention_n be_v make_v first_o not_o first_o of_o peter_n if_o we_o look_v well_o into_o the_o place_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o nothing_o be_v give_v to_o he_o which_o agree_v not_o to_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o controu_n 4._o quaest_n 2._o c._n paul_n make_v himself_o equal_a to_o peter_n in_o all_o point_n tindal_n in_o fox_n his_o act_n p._n 1139._o s._n paul_n be_v great_a than_o peter_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n articuli_fw-la smalcaldici_fw-la pag._n 345._o we_o give_v no_o prerogative_n to_o peter_n luther_n in_o gal._n 2._o to_o 5._o this_o place_n clear_o show_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a vocation_n and_o commission_n there_o be_v altogether_o equality_n among_o they_o no_o apostle_n be_v great_a than_o a_o other_o illyricus_n in_o praefat._n lib._n de_fw-la sectis_fw-la it_o appear_v that_o christ_n give_v no_o primacy_n at_o all_o in_o his_o church_n to_o any_o man_n caluinus_n in_o matth._n 20._o v._n 25._o christ_n show_v that_o in_o his_o kingdom_n firstnesse_n no_o primacy_n or_o firstnesse_n there_o be_v no_o primacy_n for_o which_o they_o contend_v beza_n in_o matth._n 10._o v._n 2._o what_o if_o this_o word_n first_o be_v add_v of_o some_o who_o will_v establish_v peter_n primacy_n festus_n homius_fw-la disput_fw-la 12._o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a in_o dignity_n authority_n
teach_v that_o christ_n pray_v that_o s._n peter_n faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v which_o undoubted_o he_o obtain_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o s._n peter_n lose_v his_o faith_n err_v from_o faith_n do_v not_o retain_v faith_n do_v apostotate_n that_o his_o faith_n fail_v that_o infidelity_n prevail_v against_o he_o which_o be_v so_o open_a a_o contradiction_n of_o scripture_n as_o diverse_a protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v l._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la v._o whether_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n apocalip_n 21._o v._n 14._o and_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n have_v twelve_o church_n the_o apostle_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n foundation_n and_o in_o they_o twelve_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n ephes_n 2._o v._n 20._o you_o be_v citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o domestical_o of_o god_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o high_a corner_n stone_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v c._n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 11._o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 4._o q._n 1._o c._n 2._o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n church_n not_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o faith_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v a_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n moulin_n in_o his_o bucler_n p._n 380._o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o the_o foundation_n peter_n martyr_n in_o locis_fw-la clas_o 4._o cap._n 3._o §_o 4._o if_o we_o read_v in_o the_o father_n as_o we_o do_v in_o the_o apocalypse_v that_o there_o be_v twelve_o foundation_n here_o foundation_n be_v not_o put_v for_o the_o rout_n of_o the_o building_n but_o for_o great_a stone_n which_o be_v next_o to_o the_o foundation_n beza_n in_o ephes_n 2._o vers_fw-la 20._o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v bvilder_n of_o this_o temple_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o also_o now_o faithful_a minister_n be_v but_o not_o the_o foundation_n itself_o herbrandus_fw-la in_o compend_v theol._n loco_fw-la de_fw-fr eccles_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o their_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n they_o lay_v the_o foundation_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o there_o be_v twelve_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o they_o write_v the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n that_o we_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n where_o there_o be_v manifest_a distinction_n make_v between_o the_o foundation_n on_o which_o we_o be_v build_v and_o christ_n catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o foundation_n that_o they_o be_v not_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o bvilder_n not_o foundation_n but_o great_a stone_n next_o to_o the_o foundation_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o some_o protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v l._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la vi_o whether_o the_o apostle_n be_v simple_o to_o be_v hear_v or_o believe_v without_o examination_n of_o their_o doctrine_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n luc._n 10._o v._n 16._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o hear_v the_o apostle_n be_v simple_o to_o be_v hear_v 1._o thessalon_n 1._o v._n 12._o we_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n without_o intermission_n because_o that_o when_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o same_o also_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n cite_v in_o the_o next_o article_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n defence_n count_v whitak_n l._n 3._o sect_n 5._o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n antidote_n act._n 17._o v._n 11._o christ_n have_v join_v his_o truth_n and_o the_o apostle_n preach_v so_o narrow_o as_o he_o say_v who_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o why_o then_o not_o also_o who_o examine_v your_o doctrine_n examine_v my_o truth_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 2._o quaest_n 5._o cap._n 11._o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o simple_o to_o be_v hear_v but_o to_o be_v examine_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n hear_v not_o simple_o to_o be_v hear_v of_o scripture_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o it_o and_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o they_o differre_fw-la much_o less_o &c._n &c._n and_o l._n 2._o cont_n dureum_fw-la sect_n 2._o when_o paul_n preach_v to_o the_o berheans_n they_o examine_v the_o scripture_n for_o to_o know_v full_o whether_o those_o thing_n which_o paul_n teach_v agree_v with_o scripture_n and_o this_o their_o example_n be_v allow_v with_o the_o high_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o propose_v to_o all_o christian_n to_o be_v imitate_v caluin_n in_o actor_n 17._o vers_fw-la 11._o the_o thessalonian_o do_v not_o take_v upon_o to_o examine_v whether_o god_n truth_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v or_o no_o only_o they_o examine_v paul_n doctrine_n to_o the_o line_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a touchstone_n by_o which_o all_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v and_o see_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n praise_v the_o thessalonian_o it_o prescribe_v in_o their_o example_n a_o rule_n for_o us._n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o disciple_n to_o examine_v paul_n doctrine_n and_o 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 8._o §_o 4._o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o very_a name_n do_v show_v how_o far_o their_o commission_n stretch_v forsooth_o if_o they_o be_v apostle_n let_v they_o not_o prate_v what_o they_o listen_v but_o faithful_o deliver_v his_o commandment_n who_o send_v they_o luther_n praefat._n assert_v artic._n to_o 2._o if_o s._n paul_n gospel_n or_o the_o new_a testament_n must_v have_v be_v try_v by_o the_o old_a scripture_n whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o no_o what_o do_v we_o who_o will_v have_v the_o father_n say_n examine_v by_o the_o scripture_n daneus_fw-la contr._n 4._o p._n 611._o it_o be_v most_o false_a that_o he_o write_v that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o examine_v of_o the_o disciple_n and_o auditor_n yea_o christ_n himself_o command_v his_o own_o doctrine_n to_o be_v so_o examine_v io._n 5._o 39_o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o who_o hear_v the_o apostle_n hear_v christ_n that_o their_o word_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o as_o such_o receive_v of_o such_o as_o be_v faithful_a the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v simple_o but_o first_o to_o be_v examine_v that_o all_o christian_n ought_v to_o imitate_v the_o betheans_n in_o examine_v s._n paul_n doctrine_n that_o the_o apostle_n must_v not_o prate_v what_o they_o listen_v that_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v try_v by_o the_o old_a testament_n art_fw-la vii_o whether_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n john_n 15._o v._o 27._o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v give_v testimone_v of_o i_o witness_n the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_a witness_n and_o you_o also_o shall_v give_v testimony_n because_o you_o be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n c._n 21._o v._n 24._o this_o be_v that_o disciple_n which_o give_v testimony_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o have_v write_v these_o thing_n and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testimony_n be_v true_a c._n 1._o v._n 7._o this_o man_n come_v for_o testimony_n to_o give_v testimony_n of_o the_o light_n that_o all_o may_v believe_v through_o he_o act_n 1._o v._o 8._o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v witness_n unto_o i_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o all_o jewrie_n and_o samaria_n and_o even_o unto_o the_o utmost_a of_o the_o earth_n c._n 5._o v._n 32._o and_o we_o be_v witness_n of_o these_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o god_n have_v give_v to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o c._n 10._o v._n 42._o he_o god_n raise_v up_o the_o three_o day_n and_o give_v he_o to_o be_v make_v manifest_a not_o to_o all_o the_o people_n but_o to_o witness_v preordinate_v of_o god_n to_o we_o who_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o he_o after_o he_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a 3._o ihon._n v._n 12._o and_o we_o give_v testimony_n and_o thou_o know_v that_o our_o testimony_n be_v true_a exode_n 14._o v._n 31._o and_o they_o believe_v our_o lord_n and_o moses_n his_o servant_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n defence_n contr._n whitaker_n l._n 1._o
sect_n 8._o in_o all_o these_o thing_n the_o apostle_n do_v allege_v their_o testimony_n and_o themselves_o also_o as_o witness_n of_o that_o truth_n which_o they_o teach_v and_o l._n 3._o sect_n 3._o the_o apostle_n be_v witness_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o they_o give_v authority_n to_o their_o doctrine_n see_v he_o cont._n 4._o l._n 8._o c._n 9_o protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 1._o q._n 3._o c._n 11._o god_n alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n witness_n none_o but_o god_n be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o himself_o and_o l._n 3._o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la c._n 13._o sect_n 3._o the_o people_n do_v not_o believe_v moses_n for_o himself_o but_o for_o that_o divine_a and_o great_a miracle_n belief_n be_v give_v to_o moses_n and_o paul_n not_o for_o themselves_o but_o for_o god_n authority_n which_o appear_v in_o their_o ministry_n and_o ib._n sect_n 1._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o humane_a and_o contr._n 1._o q._n 3._o c._n 11._o cit_fw-la the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v humane_a the_o same_o follow_v evident_o of_o that_o which_o they_o say_v in_o the_o former_a article_n for_o if_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n must_v be_v examine_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o their_o doctrine_n the_o same_o whitaker_n contr._n 2._o q._n 4._o c._n 3._o yea_o after_o christ_n apostle_n not_o the_o apostle_n ascension_n and_o that_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o apostle_n manifest_v it_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n err_v about_o the_o vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o not_o the_o vulgar_a christian_n only_o but_o even_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o doctor_n these_o be_v great_a error_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n even_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v descend_v upon_o they_o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v they_o to_o testify_v of_o christ_n that_o they_o be_v join_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n witness_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o be_v witness_n appoint_v of_o god_n that_o their_o testimony_n be_v true_a that_o all_o may_v believe_v through_o saint_n john_n that_o the_o faithful_a believe_v god_n and_o moses_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o none_o but_o god_n be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o nether_a paul_n nor_o moses_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o themselves_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v but_o humane_a that_o the_o apostle_n err_v and_o that_o great_o even_o after_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v descend_v upon_o they_o art_fw-la viii_o whether_o the_o apostle_n learn_v any_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n after_o christ_n ascension_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n john_n 16._o v._o 12._o yet_o many_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o say_v to_o you_o but_o you_o christ_n the_o apostle_n learn_v some_o thing_n after_o christ_n can_v bear_v they_o now_o but_o when_o he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n come_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o joan._n 16._o v._n 12._o by_o this_o testimony_n be_v clear_o prove_v that_o christ_n teach_v not_o all_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o that_o both_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n learn_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n contr._n 1._o q._n 6._o c._n 10._o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v suggest_v no_o nothing_o they_o learn_v nothing_o other_o thing_n than_o those_o which_o christ_n have_v teach_v caluin_n in_o joan._n 14._o vers_fw-la 26._o mark_v what_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v which_o he_o promise_v that_o he_o spirit_n shall_v teach_v he_o say_v he_o shall_v suggest_v or_o bring_v to_o mind_n whatsoever_o i_o have_v say_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o coiner_n of_o new_a revelation_n and_o 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 8._o §_o 8._o that_o limitation_n be_v careful_o to_o be_v note_v where_o he_o appoint_v the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o office_n to_o suggest_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v teach_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n beza_n in_o joan._n 14._o v._n 26._o the_o apostle_n nether_a learn_v nor_o teach_v any_o point_n of_o christian_a and_o save_v doctrine_n after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v tell_v to_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o can_v not_o bear_v in_o christ_n time_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v send_v to_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n learn_v no_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n after_o christ_n departure_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n reveal_v no_o new_a thing_n to_o they_o that_o he_o suggest_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o christ_n have_v teach_v art_fw-la ix_o whether_o judas_n be_v true_o a_o disciple_n or_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n matth._n 10._o v._n 1._o &_o seq_n and_o have_v call_v his_o twelve_o disciple_n christ_n judas_n be_v true_o a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n together_o he_o give_v they_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v these_o the_o first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n and_o judas_n iscariot_n who_o also_o betray_v he_o et_fw-fr c._n 20._o v._n 14._o &_o 47._o &_o marc._n 14._o v._n 10._o &_o 43._o &_o luc._n 22._o v._n 3._o &_o 47._o he_o be_v call_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o john_n 12._o v._o 14._o one_o therefore_o of_o his_o disciple_n judas_n iscariot_n act_n 1._o v._o 17._o judas_n who_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o they_o that_o apprehend_v jesus_n who_o be_v number_v among_o we_o and_o obtain_v the_o lot_n of_o this_o ministry_n v._o 25._o show_v of_o these_o twoe_o one_o who_o thou_o have_v choose_v to_o take_v the_o place_n of_o this_o ministry_n and_o apostleship_n from_o the_o which_o judas_n have_v prevaricate_v and_o the_o lot_n fall_v upon_o mathias_n and_o he_o be_v number_v with_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v card._n bellarm._n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 7._o judas_n be_v once_o of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o and_o call_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n psal_n 108._o which_o can_v not_o be_v true_a unless_o he_o have_v be_v of_o the_o church_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 2._o q._n 1._o cap._n 7._o i_o answer_v that_o the_o reprobate_a church_n judas_n never_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n judas_n be_v never_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n he_o hold_v for_o a_o time_n a_o principal_a place_n in_o the_o outward_a society_n of_o the_o church_n because_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n but_o this_o make_v he_o not_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n but_o how_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o apostle_n austin_n tell_v tract_n 61._o in_o joan._n that_o how_o he_o be_v one_o in_o number_n not_o in_o merit_n church_n never_o a_o apostle_n indeed_o never_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o show_v not_o in_o virtue_n but_o what_o be_v in_o show_n seem_v to_o be_v but_o be_v not_o indeed_o daneus_fw-la controu_n 4._o c._n 2._o judas_n iscariot_n and_o simon_n magus_n be_v never_o true_a member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v protestant_n common_o who_o deny_v that_o any_o reprobate_n can_v be_v in_o the_o true_a church_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o c._n 8._o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o judas_n be_v one_o of_o christ_n disciple_n one_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v number_v among_o they_o obtain_v the_o lot_n of_o their_o ministry_n have_v the_o place_n of_o apostleship_n which_o s._n mathias_n afterward_o have_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o judas_n be_v never_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n seem_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o be_v not_o indeed_o art_fw-la x._o whether_o judas_n be_v a_o bishop_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n act_n 1._o v._o 20._o for_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o psalm_n be_v bishop_n judas_n be_v a_o bishop_n their_o habitation_n make_v desert_n and_o be_v there_o none_o that_o dwell_v in_o it_o and_o he_o judas_n bishopric_n let_v a_o other_o take_v catholik_o express_o deny_v c._n bellarm._n cite_v in_o the_o former_a article_n judas_n be_v call_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n cont._n 2._o q._n 1._o c._n 7._o judas_n be_v a_o apostle_n therefore_o no_o bishop_n he_o be_v no_o bishop_n bishop_n because_o the_o apostle_n be_v no_o bishop_n the_o same_o say_v other_o protestant_n who_o deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v
authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o sustain_v or_o conserve_v the_o truth_n that_o faith_n rely_v not_o upon_o her_o authority_n that_o truth_n do_v not_o rely_v upon_o her_o authority_n as_o a_o foundation_n no_o not_o in_o regard_n or_o respect_n of_o us._n the_o sum_n of_o this_o chapter_n of_o the_o church_n what_o have_v be_v repeat_v in_o this_o chapter_n do_v make_v manifest_a that_o protestant_n describe_v unto_o we_o a_o church_n quite_o different_a from_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o catholic_n propose_v for_o the_o scripture_n and_o catholik_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o protestant_n say_v there_o be_v twoe_o church_n they_o say_v she_o contain_v both_o bad_a and_o reprobate_n that_o she_o endure_v for_o ever_o be_v always_o visible_a infallible_a in_o faith_n be_v simple_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v hear_v and_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o faith_n touch_v we_o all_o which_o point_n protestant_n deny_v they_o also_o make_v manifest_a that_o protestant_n steal_v from_o the_o church_n a_o great_a part_n of_o she_o to_o wit_n the_o bad_a and_o reprobate_a faithful_a and_o many_o of_o her_o chief_a property_n namely_o unity_n perpetuity_n continual_a visibilitie_n infallibility_n and_o our_o dependencie_n upon_o she_o in_o belief_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o church_n now_o of_o temple_n or_o material_a church_n chapter_n viii_o of_o temple_n or_o material_a church_n art_fw-la i._o whether_o the_o church_n be_v also_o for_o private_a prayer_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n king_n 3._o cap._n 8._o ver_fw-la 41._o moreover_o also_o the_o stranger_n stranger_n place_v of_o prayer_n for_o a_o stranger_n which_o be_v not_o of_o thy_o people_n israel_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v from_o a_o far_a country_n for_o thy_o name_n and_o shall_v pray_v in_o this_o place_n thou_o shall_v hear_v in_o heaven_n in_o the_o firmament_n of_o thy_o habitation_n and_o shall_v do_v all_o thing_n for_o which_o the_o stranger_n shall_v invocate_v thou_o 2._o paralipoman_n 6._o vers_fw-la 21._o whosoever_o shall_v pray_v in_o this_o whosoever_o for_o whosoever_o place_n hear_v out_o of_o thy_o habitation_n that_o be_v from_o the_o heaven_n and_o be_v propitious_a matthew_n 21._o vers_fw-la 13._o it_o be_v write_v my_o house_n shall_v be_v call_v a_o house_n of_o prayer_n luc._n 2._o five_o 37._o who_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o temple_n by_o fasting_n anne_n for_o s._n anne_n and_o prayer_n serve_v night_n and_o day_n c._n 24._o v._n 53._o and_o they_o be_v always_o in_o the_o temple_n praise_v and_o bless_v god_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v cardin._n bellarm._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-mi santis_z cap._n 4._o the_o church_n of_o christian_n be_v right_o institute_v for_o to_o pray_v also_o private_a prayer_n protestant_n express_o deny_v tindal_n in_o fox_n act_n 1610._o pag._n 1138._o church_n be_v for_o preach_v only_o for_o preach_v only_o only_o and_o fox_n add_v this_o article_n contain_v nether_a error_n nor_o honesty_n vorstius_n in_o antibellarm_n p._n 327._o nether_a be_v this_o a_o lawful_a end_n prayer_n not_o for_o private_a prayer_n of_o church_n that_o the_o faithful_a pray_v privacy_n in_o they_o luther_n in_o festo_fw-la dedicat._n templi_fw-la fol._n 447._o the_o people_n which_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v all_o just_a and_o subject_a to_o no_o law_n especial_o prayer_n not_o dedicate_v to_o prayer_n that_o pertain_v to_o ceremony_n of_o temple_n and_o therefore_o now_o among_o they_o there_o be_v no_o temple_n dedicate_v to_o prayer_n and_o hereupon_o protestant_n in_o confess_v heluet._n c._n 23._o bid_v they_o beware_v that_o they_o weary_a not_o the_o people_n with_o to_o long_a prayer_n and_o in_o confess_v argentinen_n cap._n 21._o they_o detest_v our_o long_a paier_n as_o also_o do_v caluin_n in_o matth._n 6._o ver_fw-la 7._o and_o final_o in_o their_o synod_n at_o dordrach_n art_n 46._o they_o define_v that_o public_a evening_n prayer_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bring_v in_o where_o they_o be_v not_o in_o use_n and_o to_o be_v take_v away_o where_o they_o be_v so_o well_o these_o man_n love_v prayer_n in_o church_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o god_n church_n be_v the_o house_n of_o prayer_n for_o all_o people_n a_o place_n of_o prayer_n where_o the_o stranger_n may_v make_v his_o prayer_n and_o be_v hear_v that_o anna_n night_n and_o day_n pray_v in_o the_o temple_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v always_o in_o the_o temple_n praise_v god_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o church_n be_v only_o for_o preach_v that_o be_v no_o lawful_a end_n of_o church_n to_o pray_v private_o in_o they_o that_o christian_n have_v no_o temple_n dedicate_v to_o prayer_n and_o forbid_v long_o and_o evening_n prayer_n in_o church_n art_fw-la ii_o whether_o church_n be_v to_o be_v adorn_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n exod._n 35._o be_v describe_v the_o wonderful_a adorn_v of_o the_o tabernacle_n adorn_v church_n be_v to_o be_v adorn_v make_v by_o god_n commandment_n and_o 3._o reg._n 6._o the_o most_o rich_a ornament_n of_o the_o temple_n make_v by_o solomon_n psalm_n 25._o v._n 8._o i_o have_v love_v the_o beauty_n of_o thy_o house_n marc._n 14._o v._n 15._o say_v to_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n that_o the_o master_n say_v where_o be_v my_o refectorie_n where_o i_o may_v eat_v my_o paske_n with_o my_o disciple_n and_o he_o will_v show_v you_o a_o great_a chamber_n adorn_v and_o there_o prepare_v for_o us._n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o joan._n 12._o v._n 3._o sumptuous_a d●cking_v and_o honourable_a adorn_v when_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o for_o his_o worship_n either_o in_o the_o adorn_v or_o magnifencie_n of_o church_n or_o in_o solemn_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n do_v please_v god_n protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n in_o problemate_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr ornatu_fw-la templorum_fw-la the_o error_n adorn_v not_o to_o be_v adorn_v of_o adorn_v temple_n begin_v to_o be_v strange_a in_o constantins_n time_n and_o the_o father_n they_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o custom_n do_v exact_v the_o adorn_v of_o temple_n caluin_n in_o math._n 26._o v._n 11_o let_v we_o not_o devise_v sumptuous_a worship_n of_o god_n with_o the_o papist_n in_o joan._n 12._o v._n 6._o sure_o god_n care_v not_o for_o external_a pomp_n wherefore_o they_o be_v preposterous_a interpreter_n who_o out_o of_o christ_n answer_n do_v infer_v that_o costly_a and_o magnifical_a whorship_n do_v please_v god_n tigurini_fw-la apud_fw-la hospin_n part_n 2._o hist_o fol._n 24._o the_o ornament_n of_o church_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n vorstius_n in_o antibellarm_n p._n 327._o it_o be_v not_o only_o superfluous_a but_o also_o vain_a and_o superstitious_a and_o in_o part_n ethnicall_a also_o and_o jewish_a to_o make_v great_a and_o unprofitable_a expense_n in_o adorn_v church_n as_o every_o where_o use_v to_o be_v do_v in_o popery_n for_o that_o theatrical_a bravery_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o christian_a religion_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o god_n himself_o comcommand_v the_o tabernacle_n to_o be_v adorn_v that_o solomon_n by_o his_o instinct_n adorn_v the_o temple_n that_o david_n love_v the_o beauty_n of_o god_n house_n that_o christ_n make_v choice_n of_o a_o great_a and_o adorn_v chamber_n wherein_o he_o shall_v celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o adorn_v of_o church_n be_v a_o error_n superfluous_a vain_a superstitious_a ethnicall_a and_o judaical_a and_o contrary_a to_o christian_a religion_n that_o magnifical_a and_o costly_a worship_n please_v not_o god_n art_fw-la iii_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o put_v the_o image_n of_o angel_n or_o saint_n in_o church_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n exod._n 25._o v._o 18._o god_n thus_o command_v two_o cherubin_n temple_n image_n in_o the_o temple_n also_o thou_o shall_v make_v of_o beat_a gold_n on_o both_o side_n of_o the_o oracle_n and_o vers_fw-la 22._o and_o i_o will_v speak_v to_o thou_o over_o the_o propitiatory_a and_o from_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o two_o cherubin_n which_o shall_v be_v upon_o the_o ark_n of_o testimony_n all_o thing_n which_o i_o will_v command_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n by_o thou_o 3._o reg._n 6._o vers_fw-la 23._o and_o he_o solomon_n make_v in_o the_o oracle_n two_o cherub_n of_o olive_n tree_n of_o ten_o cubit_n in_o height_n and_o v._o 27._o and_o he_o put_v the_o cherub_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o inner_a temple_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n session_n 25._o c._n de_fw-fr inuocat_fw-la the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o other_o saint_n
be_v make_v at_o his_o death_n bucanus_n in_o institution_n loco_fw-la 48._o which_o be_v give_v be_v not_o say_v but_o by_o change_n of_o time_n present_a for_o that_o which_o be_v straight_o to_o come_v for_z which_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o wit_n on_o the_o cross_n not_o in_o the_o eucharist_n reineccius_n to_o 4._o armaturae_fw-la c._n 19_o christ_n use_v the_o time_n present_a for_o the_o future_a the_o same_o say_v caluin_n admonit_a ult._n p._n 836._o beza_n in_o math._n 26._o v._n 28._o tilenus_n in_o syntagm_n c._n 61._o micronius_n in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o f._n 236._o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o at_o the_o very_a present_a time_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n christ_n body_n be_v give_v 10._o chrysostom_n theophilact_fw-mi oecum_fw-la in_o 1._o cor._n 10._o be_v deliver_v be_v break_v and_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o us._n and_o the_o holy_a father_n declare_v how_o it_o be_v most_o true_a the_o catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n express_o say_v that_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v break_v in_o the_o eucharist_n that_o his_o body_n be_v not_o break_v in_o the_o supper_n that_o his_o blood_n be_v not_o shed_v in_o the_o eucharist_n that_o christ_n say_v which_o be_v give_v for_o which_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o take_v the_o present_a time_n for_o the_o future_a which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o diverse_a protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v l._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la vi_o whether_o the_o chalice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n luc._n 22._o vers_fw-la 20._o this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o chalice_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o greek_a text_n shall_v be_v us._n the_o chalice_n shed_v for_o us._n shed_v for_o you_o catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o math._n 26._o v._n 28_o keep_v the_o grammatical_a and_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n luke_n as_o they_o be_v in_o greek_a where_o the_o chalice_n itself_o be_v say_v to_o be_v shed_v in_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o chalice_n we_o must_v needs_o understand_v not_o wine_n but_o blood_n in_o the_o chalice_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n ad_fw-la ration_n 1._o campiani_n the_o chalice_n be_v not_o us._n not_o shed_v for_o us._n shed_v for_o we_o and_o yet_o he_o confess_v that_o if_o we_o stick_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n we_o must_v either_o say_v that_o the_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o or_o we_o must_v make_v false_a greek_a beza_n in_o lucae_n 22._o v._n 20._o these_o word_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o wine_n much_o less_o of_o the_o cup_n musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la titul_fw-la de_fw-fr caena_n but_o if_o in_o luke_n we_o read_v which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o that_o be_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o cup_n but_o to_o the_o blood_n again_o i_o think_v that_o the_o word_n of_o shed_v in_o saint_n luke_n be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o th●_n cup_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o the_o blood_n the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o the_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o greek_a text_n which_o alone_o protestant_n account_v authentical_a in_o so_o much_o as_o not_o only_a lutheran_n protestant_n confess_v it_o but_o also_o d._n willet_n though_o a_o a_o caluinist_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v controu_n 13._o quaest_n 1._o pag._n 595._o the_o paticiple_n shed_v agree_v with_o the_o cup_n not_o with_o my_o blood_n as_o the_o evangelist_n say_v the_o cup_n be_v shed_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o chalice_n be_v not_o shed_v for_o we_o that_o these_o word_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o cup_n that_o the_o word_n shed_v in_o s._n luke_n be_v not_o refer_v to_o the_o cup_n which_o contradiction_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a as_o many_o protestant_n confess_v it_o nor_o can_v it_o he_o avoid_v by_o any_o better_a colour_n than_o by_o change_v the_o greek_a text_n or_o by_o say_v that_o saint_n luke_n write_v false_a greek_a who_o yet_o be_v a_o excellent_a grecian_a as_o be_v evident_a by_o all_o his_o writing_n art_fw-la vii_o whether_o bread_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v the_o eucharist_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n math._n 26._o v._n 26._o and_o while_o they_o be_v at_o supper_n jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o bless_a and_o break_v and_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v eucharist_n bread_n necessary_a to_o the_o eucharist_n take_v you_o add_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n joan._n 6._o vers_fw-la 51._o if_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o f●●h_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o cor._n 10._o v._n 16._o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v s._n thomas_n 3._o part_n q._n 74._o art_n 4._o there_o must_v needs_o be_v bread_n of_o wheat_n without_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o make_v protestant_n express_o deny_v beza_n epist_n 2._o vol._n 3._o where_o there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o bread_n or_o wine_n or_o no_o plenty_n at_o sometime_o may_v no_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v celebrate_v yes_o it_o may_v be_v well_o celebrate_v if_o that_o which_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o necessary_a bread_n not_o necessary_a bread_n and_o wine_n either_o by_o common_a use_n or_o by_o occasion_n of_o the_o time_n be_v take_v in_o place_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o very_a word_n be_v repeat_v by_o hospin_n part_n 1_o histor_n c._n 2._o tilenus_n in_o syntagmate_n c._n 61._o in_o these_o country_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o plenty_n no_o use_n of_o wheaten_a bread_n or_o wine_n press_v out_o of_o of_o grape_n we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v well_o celebrate_v if_o that_o be_v use_v for_o this_o symbol_n which_o there_o be_v in_o steed_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n bucanus_n in_o institut_fw-la theol._n loco_fw-la 48._o what_o if_o bread_n such_o as_o we_o have_v and_o wine_n want_v in_o any_o country_n with_o what_o sign_n be_v the_o supper_n to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o those_o earthly_a element_n and_o corporal_a meat_n which_o all_o man_n in_o that_o country_n use_v for_o bread_n and_o wine_n meat_n and_o drink_v so_o also_o teach_v homius_fw-la disput_fw-la 47._o nether_a be_v it_o dislike_v of_o peter_n martyr_n in_o 1._o cor._n 10._o caluin_n also_o apud_fw-la bezam_n epist_n 25._o allow_v other_o drink_n in_o steed_n of_o wine_n in_o place_n where_o wine_n want_v the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o bread_n catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o bread_n be_v not_o necessary_a that_o where_o bread_n want_v there_o it_o may_v be_v make_v of_o other_o meat_n art_fw-la viii_o whether_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v make_v of_o azime_n or_o unleavened_a bread_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n math._n 2._o ver_fw-la 17._o be_v say_v that_o christ_n celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o azime_n et_fw-la marc._n 14._o v._n 12._o the_o first_o bread_n christ_n use_v azime_n bread_n day_n of_o the_o azime_n when_o they_o sacrifice_v the_o pasche_n &_o luc._n 22._o five_o 7._o the_o day_n of_o the_o azime_n wherein_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o pasche_n shall_v be_v kill_v now_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o azime_n it_o be_v forbid_v exod._n 12._o and_o 13._o that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o leaven_n bread_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o command_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v who_o in_o that_o time_n have_v eat_v leaven_n bread_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v s._n thomas_n 3._o part_n q._n 74._o art_n 4._o the_o custom_n of_o celebrate_v in_o azime_n bread_n be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n protestant_n express_o deny_v beza_n l._n quaest_n &_o respon_n vol._n 3._o i_o say_v free_o that_o there_o be_v a_o judaisme_n to_o use_v azime_n be_v a_o blemish_n savour_v judaisme_n double_a blemish_n in_o those_o church_n which_o rather_o use_v azime_n then_o leaven_n bread_n for_o that_o savour_v judaisme_n and_o be_v less_o agreeable_a to_o our_o daily_a meat_n lobechius_n disput_fw-la 12._o thus_o write_v the_o zuinglian_a caluinist_n necessary_a leaven_n bread_n necessary_a despise_v azime_n bread_n with_o a_o pharisaical_a pride_n yea_o cursing_z it_o do_v thrust_v leaven_n bread_n upon_o the_o church_n under_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n pareus_n colleg._n theol._n 9_o disput_fw-la 26._o it_o must_v be_v household_n bread_n for_o analogy_n sake_n the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o christ_n institute_v the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o day_n
work_n work_n faith_n be_v no_o work_n caluin_n in_o joan._n 6._o v._n 29._o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o christ_n speak_v improper_o when_o he_o call_v faith_n a_o work_n beza_n ib._n they_o be_v very_o ridiculous_a who_o out_o of_o this_o place_n do_v infer_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n pareus_n l._n 4._o the_o justif_a c._n 17._o it_o be_v false_a that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n tilenus_n in_o syntagmate_n c._n 40._o but_o nether_a if_o we_o will_v speak_v proper_o can_v faith_n be_v call_v a_o work_n conference_n of_o the_o foresay_v word_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n or_o a_o divine_a work_n that_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o do_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o faith_n be_v no_o work_n that_o they_o be_v ridiculous_a who_o say_v faith_n be_v a_o work_n that_o it_o be_v false_a that_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n art_fw-la ii_o whether_o faith_n beleive_v any_o thing_n beside_o god_n promise_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n joan._n 17._o v._n 3._o and_o this_o be_v life_n everlasting_a that_o we_o know_v thou_o god_n faith_n know_v god_n and_o christ_n beleive_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n understand_v the_o creation_n beleive_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o only_a true_a to_o god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ_n rom._n 10._o vers_fw-la 9_o for_o if_o thou_o confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o in_o thy_o hart_n believe_v that_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v hebr._n 11._o v._o 3._o by_o faith_n we_o understand_v that_o the_o world_n be_v frame_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1._o joan._n 5._o v._n 5._o who_o be_v he_o that_o overcome_v the_o world_n but_o he_o that_o beleive_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 6._o can._n 12._o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o justify_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o trust_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n forgive_a sin_n for_o christ_n be_v he_o accurse_v protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n in_o genes_n 15._o to_o 6._o f._n 178._o sure_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o promise_n i'faith_o nothing_o but_o a_o assent_n to_o the_o promise_n nor_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o assent_n to_o the_o promise_n postilla_fw-la in_o epist_n dom._n 3._o aduentus_fw-la fol._n 31._o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o firm_a constant_a perseverant_fw-la trust_v far_o from_o all_o doubt_n and_o waver_a of_o god_n grace_n and_o good_a will_n to_o endure_v for_o ever_o grace_n a_o trust_n of_o god_n grace_n melancthon_n in_o coloss_n 1._o faith_n signify_v not_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n for_o such_o be_v in_o the_o devil_n but_o a_o assent_n wherewith_o we_o embrace_v the_o promise_n hutterus_n in_o analysi_fw-la confess_v augustan_n art_n 4._o to_o believe_v trust_n nothing_o but_o a_o full_a trust_n in_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o with_o full_a trust_n of_o mind_n to_o rely_v upon_o the_o evangelicall_a promise_n of_o free_a pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o out_o of_o they_o to_o promise_v undoubted_o to_o himself_o god_n grace_n salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n for_o the_o merit_n and_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ._n again_o there_o be_v one_o only_o and_o the_o same_o object_n of_o faith_n in_o respect_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v to_o save_v to_o wit_n the_o only_a promise_n of_o god_n mercy_n of_o free_a pardon_n of_o sin_n by_o and_o for_o christ_n gerlachius_n disput_fw-la 17._o to_o 2._o there_o be_v no_o other_o object_n of_o justify_v faith_n proper_o and_o special_o so_o term_v than_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n lobechius_n disput_fw-la 22._o other_o do_v err_v in_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n faith_n god_n whole_a word_n not_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o make_v the_o whole_a scripture_n for_o the_o object_n of_o justify_v faith_n bucer_n in_o 1._o timoth._n 4._o v._o 15._o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o firm_a persuasion_n of_o salvation_n get_v by_o christ_n beza_n in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o v._n 15._o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o firm_a persuasion_n of_o our_o election_n in_o christ_n in_o confess_v 4._o sect_n 5._o faith_n be_v not_o that_o wherewith_o only_o we_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v god_n and_o his_o word_n to_o be_v true_a for_o the_o devil_n have_v this_o faith_n c._n 7._o sect_n 8._o faith_n be_v not_o a_o historical_a knowledge_n of_o thing_n reveal_v by_o god_n but_o a_o certain_a testimony_n which_o the_o spirit_n give_v to_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a that_o they_o be_v choose_v of_o god_n and_o in_o brevi_fw-la confess_v p._n 82._o that_o indeed_o be_v it_o which_o we_o call_v faith_n so_o much_o commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n when_o a_o man_n certain_o persuade_v himself_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n and_o life_n everlasting_a do_v peculiar_o belong_v to_o himself_o zanchius_n de_fw-fr perseverant_fw-la to_o 7._o col_fw-fr 172._o what_o other_o thing_n be_v faith_n than_o a_o certain_a persuasion_n conceive_v of_o the_o free_a good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o in_o christ_n serranus_n count_v hayum_n part_n 3._o p._n 211._o faith_n be_v whole_o about_o the_o promise_n the_o like_a have_v caluin_n 3_o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o §_o 8._o and_o de_fw-la vera_fw-la reform_v p._n 318._o and_o other_o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o that_o be_v justify_v faith_n wherewith_o we_o believe_v the_o true_a god_n and_o christ_n jesus_n wherewith_o we_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o justify_v faith_n be_v not_o that_o wherewith_o we_o believe_v the_o sacred_a history_n of_o christ_n wherewith_o we_o believe_v thing_n reveal_v of_o god_n wherewith_o we_o believe_v god_n word_n to_o be_v true_a but_o that_o it_o be_v all_o about_o the_o promise_n have_v no_o other_o object_n then_o the_o promise_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o assent_n to_o the_o promise_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o trust_n of_o grace_n nothing_o but_o a_o persuasion_n of_o salvation_n art_fw-la iii_o whether_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n be_v justify_v faith_n or_o profit_v any_o man_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n joan._n 20._o vers_fw-la 31._o and_o these_o be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v save_v to_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n save_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n 1._o joan._n 4._o ver_fw-la 15._o whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n the_o like_a be_v 1._o joan._n 5._o v._n 5._o and_o rom._n 10._o v._n 9_o cit_fw-la in_o the_o former_a article_n math._n 16._o v._n 17._o when_o s._n peter_n have_v say_v thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n jesus_n answer_v say_v unto_o he_o bless_a art_n thou_o simon_n bariona_fw-la act._n 8._o v._n 37._o when_o s._n philip_n have_v say_v to_o the_o eunuch_n if_o thou_o believe_v with_o all_o thy_o hart_n thou_o may_v he_o answer_v say_v i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v card._n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la cap._n 8._o this_o faith_n which_o regard_v christ_n divinity_n be_v that_o which_o give_v justice_n and_o life_n everlasting_a protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n postilla_fw-la in_o dom._n 5_o post_n pasca_fw-la fol._n 263._o here_o we_o none_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n help_v none_o see_v that_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v one_o person_n which_o be_v god_n and_o man_n for_o that_o will_v help_v none_o f._n 260._o what_o be_v it_o then_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v god_n or_o that_o he_o rule_v in_o heaven_n equal_o with_o god_n for_o this_o many_o other_o believe_v in_o gal._n 3._o to_o 5._o f._n 346._o it_o be_v a_o feign_a faith_n which_o faith_n belief_n of_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v a_o feign_a faith_n hear_v of_o god_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o redemption_n and_o apprehend_v these_o thing_n hear_v hutterus_n in_o analysi_fw-la confess_v august_n art_n 4._o justify_v faith_n be_v not_o any_o whatsoever_o but_o a_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n not_o wherewith_o we_o believe_v christ_n or_o that_o
the_o pharise_n the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o many_o prince_n who_o confess_v not_o christ_n and_o love_v the_o glory_n of_o man_n more_o than_o of_o god_n do_v believe_v in_o christ_n that_o many_o believe_v in_o christ_n name_n who_o christ_n trust_v not_o that_o a_o evil_a man_n do_v well_o in_o believe_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o the_o foresay_v prince_n do_v not_o believe_v have_v not_o true_a faith_n be_v no_o beleiver_n that_o those_o who_o christ_n trust_v not_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o true_a not_o sincere_a but_o hypocrisy_n that_o only_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o adopt_a son_n of_o god_n be_v partaker_n of_o true_a faith_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o impious_a and_o wicked_a be_v feign_v dissemble_a a_o imagination_n or_o image_n of_o faith_n not_o true_a faith_n that_o the_o impious_a be_v not_o faithful_a art_fw-la xxi_o whether_o faith_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o elect_n scripture_n express_o denieth._n act._n 8._o ver_fw-la 13._o then_o simon_n magus_n also_o himself_o believe_v faith_n simon_n magus_n have_v faith_n and_o be_v baptize_v he_o cleeve_v to_o philippe_n see_v also_o sign_n and_o very_o great_a miracle_n to_o be_v do_v he_o be_v astonish_v with_o admiration_n heb._n 6._o v._o 4._o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o that_o be_v once_o illuminate_v reprobate_n also_o some_o reprobate_n have_v taste_v also_o the_o heavenly_a gift_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v fall_v to_o be_v renew_v again_o to_o penance_n catholik_o express_o deny_v d._n stapleton_n in_o actor_n 8._o v._n 13._o simon_n magus_n have_v true_a faith_n card._n bellarm._n l._n 3._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la c._n 14._o faith_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o elect_a protestant_n express_o affirm_v whitaker_n l._n 8._o cont_n dur._n sect_n 48._o true_a faith_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o the_o elect_a in_o contion_n ult._n in_o no_o reprobate_a true_a faith_n be_v find_v zuinglius_fw-la in_o math._n 19_o tom_n 4._o the_o scripture_n sometime_o all_o simon_n magus_n have_v no_o faith_n indeed_o believe_v not_o all_o say_v that_o some_o believe_v who_o profess_a faith_n which_o indeed_o they_o have_v not_o as_o appeareth_z of_o simon_n magus_n in_o the_o act_n in_o exposit_n fidei_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 558._o there_o be_v some_o who_o believe_v not_o at_o all_o as_o be_v judas_n and_o simon_n magus_n caluin_n in_o actor_n 8._o v._n 3._o c._n the_o mind_n of_o simon_n be_v wrap_v in_o dissimulation_n of_o faith_n beza_n count_v illyric_n vol._n 2._o p._n 131._o simon_n magus_n be_v quite_o faithless_a faithless_a be_v quite_o faithless_a in_o colloq_fw-la montisbel_n p._n 379._o indeed_o he_o want_v faith_n indeed_o he_o believe_v not_o volanus_fw-la l._n 3._o cont_n scargam_n p._n 1070._o scarga_n foolish_o attribute_v true_a faith_n to_o simon_n magus_n daneus_fw-la contr._n de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la c._n 14._o he_o object_v that_o simon_n magus_n lose_v faith_n and_o that_o other_o apostate_n do_v the_o like_a but_o i_o deny_v that_o they_o have_v or_o ever_o have_v true_a faith_n pareus_n l._n 3._o the_o justif_a c._n 14._o simon_n be_v a_o hypocrite_n believe_v only_o with_o mouth_n not_o with_o heart_n and_o he_o add_v nether_a make_v it_o any_o matter_n that_o luke_n absolute_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v and_o as_o for_o reprobat_n caluin_n 3_o institut_fw-la c._n 2._o §_o 11._o none_o be_v illuminate_v unto_o faith_n elect_n none_o but_o the_o predestinate_a have_v faith_n i'faith_o peculiar_a to_o the_o elect_n but_o they_o who_o be_v predestinate_v to_o salvation_n in_o confession_n p._n 106._o i_o acknowledge_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n give_v to_o the_o elect_a alone_o beza_n in_o conf._n c._n 4._o sect_n 20._o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o elect_a alone_o bucer_n in_o matthaei_n 16._o they_o be_v safe_a for_o ever_o who_o once_o have_v get_v true_a faith_n musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la titul_fw-la de_fw-fr fide_fw-la faith_n in_o christ_n be_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a zanchius_n de_fw-fr praedestinat_n c._n 4._o to_o 7._o the_o reprobate_n never_o true_o reprobate_n never_o believe_v true_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o be_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o the_o reprobate_a simon_n magus_n do_v believe_v be_v baptize_v cleeve_v to_o philippe_n and_o be_v astonish_v at_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o s._n philippe_n that_o even_o they_o who_o can_v be_v recall_v to_o penance_n be_v once_o illuminate_v catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o simon_n magus_n do_v not_o believe_v at_o all_o be_v whole_o faithless_a indeed_o want_v faith_n indeed_o believe_v not_o have_v not_o true_a faith_n believe_v only_o with_o mouth_n not_o with_o hart_n that_o only_o the_o elect_a be_v illuminate_v unto_o faith_n that_o reprobate_n never_o true_o believe_v and_o that_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n that_o the_o scripture_n absolute_o say_v the_o contrary_a these_o be_v so_o opposite_a to_o scripture_n as_o some_o protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v lib._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la xxii_o whether_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n rom._n 10._o ver_fw-la 15._o i'faith_o than_o be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v be_v by_o hear_v faith_n be_v by_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 6._o c._n 6._o they_o be_v dispose_v to_o justice_n while_o stir_v up_o and_o holpen_v by_o god_n grace_n conceave_a faith_n by_o hear_v they_o be_v free_o move_v to_o god_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n l._n 1._o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la c._n 11._o sect_n 4._o all_o true_a faith_n come_v preacher_n faith_n not_o by_o preacher_n from_o the_o scripture_n not_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o preacher_n again_o all_o the_o father_n with_o one_o voice_n teach_v that_o faith_n rise_v of_o the_o scripture_n only_o not_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n et_fw-fr c._n 13._o sect_n 8._o read_v make_v that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n et_fw-fr cont._n 145._o cap._n 8._o faith_n rise_v of_o the_o only_o of_o the_o scripture_n only_o scripture_n alone_o and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n thus_o expound_v the_o aforesaid_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o hear_v that_o be_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n right_o understand_v zuinglius_fw-la in_o exegesi_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 347._o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o faith_n can_v be_v get_v by_o word_n but_o that_o faith_n be_v mistress_n the_o word_n which_o be_v propose_v may_v be_v understand_v de_fw-fr providentia_fw-la cap._n 6._o tom_n 1._o when_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n that_o faith_n be_v hearing_n not_o by_o outward_a hearing_n by_o hear_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o near_o and_o more_o know_a cause_n to_o we_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o to_o outward_a preach_n the_o like_a word_n have_v oecolampadius_n apud_fw-la schlusselburg_n libro_fw-la 1._o theol._n caluin_n art_n 1._o caluin_n in_o joan._n 5._o vers_fw-la 9_o 3_o christ_n be_v not_o otherways_o right_o know_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o add_v there_o also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o a_o preacher_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o otherways_o then_o by_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v by_o only_a scripture_n by_o read_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o preacher_n not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o external_a preach_n that_o it_o can_v be_v get_v by_o word_n art_fw-la xxiii_o whether_o faith_n be_v or_o can_v ever_o be_v lose_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n luke_n 8._o vers_fw-la 13._o for_o they_o upon_o the_o rock_n such_o as_o when_o they_o time_n some_o believe_v for_o a_o time_n hear_v with_o joy_n receive_v the_o word_n and_o these_o have_v no_o root_n because_o for_o a_o time_n they_o believe_v and_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n they_o revoult_v joan._n 20._o vers_fw-la 29._o then_o he_o say_v to_o thomas_n be_v not_o incredulous_a faith_n s._n thomas_n lose_v his_o faith_n but_o faithful_a and_o v._o 25._o thomas_n say_v unless_o i_o see_v etc._n etc._n i_o will_v not_o believe_v 1._o tim._n 1._o v._n 19_o certain_a have_v make_v shipwrak_fw-mi about_o faith_n c._n 4._o faith_n other_o lose_v faith_n v._n 1._o in_o the_o last_o time_n certain_a shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n c._n 6._o v._n 10._o certain_a have_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n
promise_n will_v be_v abrogate_a in_o philippen_n 1._o ver_fw-la 28._o certain_o the_o scripture_n no_o where_o teach_v that_o the_o affliction_n which_o the_o saint_n suffer_v of_o the_o wicked_a be_v cause_n of_o their_o salvation_n beza_n in_o confess_v c._n 4._o sect_n 19_o for_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o our_o work_n be_v cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n either_o whole_o or_o in_o part_n peter_n martyr_n in_o rom._n 9_o god_n work_n be_v no_o true_a cause_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n zanchius_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la natura_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 2._o q._n 7._o the_o work_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v no_o true_a cause_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n but_o only_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o as_o it_o be_v by_o degree_n the_o elect_a be_v merciful_o lead_v into_o the_o everlasting_a and_o heavenly_a city_n pareus_n libr._n 4._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la cap._n 7._o our_o adversary_n conclude_v false_a that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v for_o good_a work_n tilenus_n in_o syntagmate_n cap._n 48._o good_a work_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o no_o cause_n at_o all_o salvation_n can_v be_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o teach_v not_o only_o that_o we_o shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n because_o we_o have_v do_v good_a work_n that_o we_o shall_v reap_v life_n everlasting_a of_o the_o spirit_n that_o the_o soul_n live_v for_o justification_n that_o sorrow_n according_a to_o god_n work_v salvation_n that_o afflictiction_n work_v glory_n and_o be_v cause_n of_o salvation_n but_o also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n say_v that_o the_o elect_n shall_v possess_v heaven_n because_o they_o have_v do_v good_a deed_n as_o it_o say_v that_o the_o reprobat_n shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n because_o they_o have_v do_v ill_a deed_n so_o it_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n live_v for_o justification_n as_o it_o say_v the_o body_n die_v for_o sin_n in_o like_a sort_n it_o say_v that_o sorrow_n according_a to_o god_n make_v salvation_n as_o it_o say_v that_o sorrow_n of_o the_o world_n work_v death_n even_o in_o the_o same_o sort_n it_o say_v that_o of_o sow_v in_o spirit_n we_o shall_v reap_v life_n everlasting_a as_o it_o say_v that_o of_o sow_v in_o flesh_n we_o shall_v reap_v corruption_n and_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o speech_n say_v that_o persecution_n be_v cause_n of_o salvation_n to_o those_o who_o suffer_v it_o as_o it_o say_v that_o it_o be_v cause_n of_o damnation_n to_o those_o who_o make_v it_o the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o affliction_n be_v not_o cause_n of_o salvation_n that_o the_o heavenly_a in_o heritance_n come_v not_o to_o we_o by_o work_n that_o the_o life_n be_v not_o give_v for_o good_a work_n that_o we_o be_v not_o reward_v for_o good_a work_n not_o save_v for_o work_n that_o salvation_n depend_v not_o of_o work_n that_o work_n be_v no_o way_n cause_n salvation_n be_v no_o cause_n of_o it_o either_o whole_o or_o in_o part_n which_o do_v so_o plain_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n as_o therefore_o illyricus_n be_v force_v to_o reprove_v the_o scripture_n for_o this_o he_o write_v in_o cleave_v tractat_fw-la 6._o cit_fw-la do_fw-mi de_fw-fr varia_fw-la bonorum_fw-la operum_fw-la praedicat_fw-la col_fw-fr 551._o we_o hear_v that_o toto_fw-la great_a effect_n and_o praise_n yea_o even_a salvation_n itself_o be_v attribute_v of_o the_o scripture_n to_o good_a work_n it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o very_o often_o to_o much_o poise_n be_v give_v by_o scripture_n to_o good_a work_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v to_o they_o nor_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v if_o we_o will_v speak_v exact_o true_o and_o proper_o behold_v how_o plain_o he_o say_v that_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o great_a effect_n unto_o good_a work_n attribute_v salvation_n unto_o they_o attribute_v very_a oftentime_o to_o much_o praise_n unto_o they_o and_o such_o effect_n as_o agree_v not_o to_o they_o nor_o be_v to_o be_v be_v attribute_v to_o they_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v true_o but_o sure_o if_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o much_o to_o good_a work_n and_o that_o which_o do_v not_o agree_v to_o they_o and_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v attribute_v to_o they_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v true_o the_o scripture_n in_o so_o do_v do_v false_o but_o whether_o the_o scripture_n or_o illyricus_n know_v better_o what_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o good_a work_n let_v christian_n judge_v art_fw-la xvi_o whether_o good_a work_v be_v a_o testimony_n of_o justice_n and_o predestination_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n 1._o joan._n 2._o ver_fw-la 5._o but_o he_o that_o keep_v his_o word_n in_o he_o in_o sure_a by_o good_a work_n we_o know_v we_o be_v in_o god_n that_o we_o be_v translate_v from_o death_n god_n work_v make_v election_n sure_a very_a deed_n the_o charity_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_v in_o this_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v in_o he_o cap._n 3._o ver_fw-la 14._o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v translate_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o we_o love_v the_o brethren_n and_o ver_fw-la 21._o if_o our_o hart_n do_v not_o reprehend_v we_o we_o have_v confidence_n towards_o god_n 2._o peter_n 1._o vers_n 10._o wherefore_o brethren_n labour_v the_o more_o that_o by_o good_a work_n you_o may_v make_v sure_a your_o vocation_n and_o election_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o rom._n 9_o ver_fw-la 11._o if_o we_o believe_v saint_n peter_n the_o certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o election_n be_v conclude_v in_o do_v of_o good_a work_n not_o in_o the_o only_a purpose_n of_o god_n protestant_n express_o deny_v confessio_fw-la wittenbergensis_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr confess_v we_o know_v that_o despair_n work_n make_v but_o doubt_n and_o despair_n if_o we_o look_v unto_o our_o work_n we_o shall_v not_o only_o doubt_v but_o also_o despair_v of_o our_o salvation_n ministri_fw-la electorales_n in_fw-la colloq_fw-la aldeburg_n pag._n 427._o we_o good_a no_o certainty_n by_o good_a must_v certain_o determine_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v and_o propose_v unto_o we_o and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o feel_n of_o infuse_a newness_n of_o life_n as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o effect_n that_o by_o faith_n free_o for_o and_o by_o ch●ist_v we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n caluin_n 3_o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o §_o 38._o if_o we_o must_v judge_v by_o work_n how_o god_n be_v affect_v towards_o we_o i_o confess_v that_o we_o can_v have_v but_o a_o small_a guess_n all_o it_o de_fw-fr necessitate_v reform_v pag._n 47._o what_o shall_v man_n tremble_v a_o small_a guess_n by_o work_n matter_n of_o doubt_n and_o despair_n of_o tremble_v find_v in_o his_o work_n but_o matter_n of_o doubt_v and_o at_o length_n of_o despair_v and_o in_o antidote_n concili_fw-la sess_n 6._o cap._n 8._o as_o long_o as_o we_o look_v what_o we_o be_v we_o must_v tremble_v before_o god_n so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o have_v certain_a and_o unshake_a hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n in_o rom._n 4._o v._n 14._o we_o be_v utter_o lose_v and_o undo_v if_o we_o be_v send_v to_o our_o work_n when_o we_o must_v seek_v the_o cause_n or_o certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o 1._o joan._n 3._o v._n 22._o woe_n to_o we_o if_o we_o look_v to_o our_o work_n fear_n nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o fear_n which_o have_v nothing_o in_o they_o but_o matter_n of_o fear_n pareus_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la cap._n 10._o the_o trust_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n nether_a depend_v nor_o rise_v of_o a_o good_a conscience_n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o our_o faith_n and_o trust_n do_v reap_v nothing_o of_o our_o own_o disposition_n but_o fear_v of_o deceit_n doubt_n and_o anxiety_n et_fw-fr l._n 4._o p._n 625._o of_o our_o own_o anxiety_n of_o doubt_n and_o anxiety_n accord_n we_o grant_v that_o if_o faith_n must_v rely_v upon_o inherent_a justice_n we_o must_v not_o only_o doubt_v of_o grace_n and_o justice_n but_o also_o perpetual_o tremble_v the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v in_o god_n by_o keep_v of_o his_o word_n that_o we_o know_v we_o be_v translate_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o we_o love_v our_o brethren_n that_o we_o have_v trust_v towards_o god_n if_o our_o hart_n do_v not_o reprehend_v we_o that_o we_o make_v our_o vocation_n and_o election_n certain_a by_o good_a work_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o by_o work_n we_o have_v no_o certain_a trust_n that_o trust_v nether_a depend_v nor_o rise_v of_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o by_o work_n we_o can_v have_v any_o small_a guess_n how_o god_n be_v affect_v towards_o we_o that_o we_o be_v undo_v if_o we_o must_v seek_v the_o certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n out_o of_o work_n that_o in_o work_n be_v nothing_o find_v
3_o a_o bishop_n be_v minister_v of_o the_o word_n but_o he_o must_v be_v husband_n of_o a_o wife_n in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o must_v commend_v holy_a marriage_n to_o other_o and_o terrify_v they_o from_o fornication_n caluin_n in_o 1._o cor._n 7._o v._n 25._o see_v the_o scripture_n say_v genes_n 2._o that_o male_a and_o female_a be_v create_v together_o it_o seem_v equal_o any_o single_a life_n not_o commend_v to_o any_o and_o without_o exception_n it_o call_v all_o to_o marriage_n at_o least_o single_a life_n be_v not_o command_v or_o commend_v to_o any_o in_o 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 12_o §_o 24._o paul_n reckon_v marriage_n among_o the_o virtue_n of_o a_o bishop_n et_fw-fr c._n 13._o §_o 3._o this_o be_v indeed_o to_o tempt_v god_n to_o strive_v against_o nature_n which_o god_n to_o strive_v against_o his_o flesh_n be_v to_o tempt_v god_n desire_v of_o virginity_n accurse_v of_o god_n he_o have_v give_v and_o to_o despise_v his_o present_a gift_n as_o if_o they_o belong_v not_o to_o us._n sadeel_v ad_fw-la artic._n 53._o abiurat_n this_o so_o great_a affectation_n of_o virginity_n and_o single_a life_n which_o god_n at_o last_o do_v accurse_v be_v so_o ●suall_a with_o the_o father_n as_o etc._n etc._n zanchius_n in_o thesibus_fw-la to_o 8._o it_o be_v against_o god_n commandment_n that_o a_o young_a man_n who_o have_v need_n of_o marriage_n shall_v remain_v unmarried_a and_o simple_o that_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v wnmarried_a whitaker_n controver_n 2._o quaest_n 5._o cap._n 7._o when_o bellarmin_n have_v say_v vigilantius_n teach_v that_o church_n man_n ought_v to_o be_v marry_v answer_v if_o vigilantius_n mean_v the_o lawful_a marriage_n of_o pastor_n he_o be_v in_o the_o right_n tindal_n in_o fox_n his_o act_n p._n 1139._o a_o priest_n must_v have_v a_o wife_n for_o twoe_o cause_n the_o one_o etc._n etc._n the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v a_o he_o be_v that_o be_v unmarried_a that_o such_o as_o be_v unmarried_a he_o exhort_v to_o remain_v so_o that_o christ_n exhort_v all_o to_o single_a life_n who_o can_v take_v it_o that_o in_o heaven_n there_o be_v a_o special_a reward_n for_o virgin_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o paul_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v marry_v will_v have_v a_o priest_n or_o bishop_n to_o be_v marry_v that_o christ_n terrifi_v man_n from_o virginity_n that_o god_n will_v have_v no_o man_n unmarried_a that_o he_o as_o much_o command_v to_o marry_v as_o to_o eat_v or_o drink_v that_o to_o increase_v and_o multiply_v be_v more_o than_o a_o precept_n that_o god_n have_v accurse_v the_o affectation_n of_o virginity_n that_o single_a life_n be_v commend_v to_o none_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o virginity_n art_fw-la v._o whether_o fast_v be_v a_o virtue_n or_o worship_n or_o service_n of_o god_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n luc._n 2._o v._n 37._o who_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o temple_n by_o fasting_n god_n fast_v be_v service_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n serve_v night_n and_o day_n math._n 6._o ver_fw-la 17._o when_o thou_o do_v fast_o anointe_v thy_o head_n and_o wash_v thy_o face_n that_o thou_o appear_v not_o to_o man_n to_o fast_o but_o to_o thy_o father_n who_o be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n who_o see_v in_o secret_a will_v god_n reward_v of_o god_n repay_v the._n math._n 4._o ver_fw-la 15._o but_o the_o day_n will_v come_v when_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o and_o then_o they_o shall_v fast_o catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o lucae_n 2._o vers_fw-la 37._o this_o place_n teach_v that_o fast_v belong_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o prayer_n do_v protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n in_o cathol_n reform_v contr._n 6._o pag._n 132._o fast_v be_v a_o beast_n fast_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o eat_v be_v help_v nothing_o to_o heaven_n profit_v nothing_o mens_fw-la fast_v no_o better_a than_o beast_n thing_n indifferent_a of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o of_o itself_o confer_v nothing_o to_o the_o obtain_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n no_o more_o than_o eat_v and_o drink_v do_v humphrey_n ad_fw-la ration_n 3._o campiani_n p._n 263._o we_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v true_a which_o sanders_n say_v of_o the_o jovinianist_n and_o our_o man_n that_o fast_v or_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n profit_v nothing_o luther_n in_o jonae_fw-la 3._o to_o 3_o fol._n 422._o god_n esteem_v as_o much_o the_o fasting_n and_o haireclothe_n of_o beast_n as_o of_o man_n and_o contrariwise_o what_o care_v god_n for_o sackcloth_n fast_v and_o haircloth_n caluin_n in_o math._n 16._o v._n 18._o fast_v of_o itself_o be_v a_o indifferent_a god_n a_o thing_n indifferent_a not_o require_v of_o god_n no_o service_n of_o god_n thing_n not_o of_o those_o kind_n of_o thing_n which_o god_n require_v and_o approve_v in_o c._n 4._o ver_fw-la 1._o in_o that_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o fast_v be_v a_o meritorious_a work_n and_o a_o part_n of_o piety_n or_o of_o god_n service_n it_o be_v a_o naughty_a superstition_n in_o act._n 14._o v._n 23._o let_v we_o not_o put_v any_o service_n of_o god_n in_o fast_v see_v that_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v nothing_o nor_o be_v of_o account_n with_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o a_o other_o end_n in_o moment_n of_o no_o moment_n instit_fw-la l_o 4._o c._n 12._o §_o 16._o nether_a do_v luke_n put_v any_o service_n of_o god_n in_o f●sting_v of_o itself_o it_o be_v of_o no_o moment_n c._n 19_o we_o must_v take_v great_a heed_n that_o fast_v be_v not_o account_v a_o kind_n of_o god_n service_n beza_n in_o confess_v c._n 5._o sect_n 40._o we_o commend_v not_o true_a fast_n as_o a_o kind_n of_o god_n service_n peter_n martyr_n in_o locis_fw-la loco_fw-la 10_o §_o 23._o there_o be_v a_o other_o abuse_n god_n no_o service_n of_o god_n that_o there_o be_v some_o who_o attribute_n holiness_n to_o fast_v as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o service_n of_o god_n in_o it_o whereas_o indeed_o fast_v be_v only_o a_o exercise_n which_o of_o itself_o have_v no_o sanctity_n pareus_n in_o collegio_fw-la theol._n 1._o disput_fw-la 18._o fast_v of_o it_o nature_n virtue_n no_o virtue_n be_v no_o moral_a virtue_n for_o temperance_n be_v a_o moral_a virtue_n not_o because_o it_o abstain_v from_o meat_n or_o drink_n but_o because_o it_o moderate_o use_v meat_n and_o drink_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o s._n anne_n do_v serve_v god_n by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n that_o god_n reward_v those_o that_o fast_o that_o christ_n will_v have_v he_o to_o fast_o the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o fast_v be_v no_o part_n or_o kind_n of_o god_n service_n that_o it_o be_v a_o indifferent_a thing_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o eat_v that_o it_o confer_v nothing_o to_o get_v heaven_n that_o it_o be_v nothing_o be_v only_o a_o exercise_n that_o god_n make_v no_o more_o account_n of_o man_n fasting_n then_o of_o beast_n that_o god_n require_v it_o not_o nor_o approve_v it_o art_fw-la vi_o whether_o fast_v be_v a_o preseruative_n against_o the_o devil_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n math._n 17._o v._n 21._o but_o this_o kind_n of_o devil_n be_v not_o cast_v out_o but_o fast_v some_o devil_n cast_v out_o by_o fast_v by_o prayer_n and_o fast_v catholik_o express_o affirm_v stapleton_n in_o matthew_n 17._o ver_fw-la 28._o prayer_n and_o fast_v must_v be_v add_v as_o a_o most_o sovereign_a antidote_n to_o drive_v away_o these_o kind_n of_o devil_n protestant_n express_o deny_v caluin_n in_o math._n 17._o ver_fw-la 21._o cit_fw-la the_o ridiculous_a papist_n make_v fast_v no_o devil_n cast_v out_o by_o fast_v fast_v a_o antidote_n to_o drive_v away_o devil_n illyricus_n in_o cleave_v part_n 2._o tractat_fw-la 6._o col_fw-fr 535_o thus_o expound_v the_o foresay_v word_n of_o scripture_n this_o kind_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v they_o can_v be_v cast_v out_o but_o by_o earnest_a prayer_n procede_v of_o earnest_a repentant_a and_o penitent_a hart_n and_o so_o he_o give_v no_o virtue_n to_o fast_v the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o certain_a devil_n be_v not_o cast_v out_o but_o by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o make_v fast_v a_o antidote_n against_o devil_n art_fw-la vii_o whether_o choice_n of_o meat_n be_v lawful_a or_o virtuous_a scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n daniel_n 10._o v._o 3._o in_o those_o day_n i_o daniel_n mourn_v the_o day_n of_o meat_n daniel_n use_v choice_n of_o meat_n three_o week_n desiderable_a bread_n i_o do_v not_o eat_v and_o flesh_n and_o wine_n enter_v not_o into_o my_o
anie_n have_v love_v or_o follow_v god_n in_o all_o their_o heart_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n deut._n 30._o v._o 6._o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n will_v circuncise_v thy_o hart_n and_o so_o god_n will_v make_v we_o to_o love_v he_o in_o all_o our_o hart_n david_n do_v so_o the_o hart_n of_o thy_o seed_n that_o thou_o may_v love_v our_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o all_o thy_o hart_n and_o in_o all_o thy_o soul_n that_o thou_o may_v live_v 3._o reg._n 14._o vers_fw-la 8._o thou_o have_v not_o be_v as_o my_o servant_n david_n who_o keep_v my_o commandment_n and_o follow_v i_o in_o all_o his_o hart_n do_v that_o which_o be_v well_o like_v in_o my_o sight_n 3._o reg._n 8._o v._n 23._o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n who_o keep_v covenant_n and_o mercy_n with_o thy_o servant_n that_o walk_v before_o thou_o in_o all_o their_o hart_n 4._o reg._n 23._o v._n 25._o there_o be_v no_o king_n before_o he_o josias_n like_v hart_n josias_n follow_v god_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n to_o he_o who_o return_v to_o our_o lord_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n and_o in_o all_o his_o soul_n and_o in_o all_o his_o power_n according_a to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n daniel_n 3._o 41._o azarias_n thus_o pray_v and_o now_o we_o follow_v thou_o azarias_n also_o azarias_n in_o all_o our_o hart_n and_o fear_v thou_o and_o seek_v thy_o face_n psal_n 118._o v._n 10._o with_o my_o whole_a hart_n i_o have_v seek_v after_o thou_o david_n and_o david_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v c._n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr amiss_o gratiae_n c._n 12._o luke_n write_v of_o zacharias_n and_o elizabeth_n that_o they_o walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n and_o iustification_n of_o our_o lord_n neither_o will_v they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n who_o have_v neglect_v the_o first_o and_o great_a which_o be_v of_o love_a god_n with_o all_o the_o hart_n protestant_n express_o deny_v the_o apology_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurg_n c._n de_fw-fr resp_n ad_fw-la argumenta_fw-la no_o man_n fear_v so_o much_o love_v god_n so_o much_o beleive_v god_n so_o much_o as_o he_o ought_v luther_n in_o gal._n 5._o to_o 5._o f._n 417._o thou_o shall_v not_o find_v one_o on_o earth_n who_o so_o love_v god_n and_o his_o neighbour_n as_o the_o law_n require_v postilla_fw-la hart_n none_o can_v love_v god_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n in_o dom._n 10._o post_n trinit_fw-la f._n 315._o he_o require_v that_o we_o love_v he_o with_o all_o our_o hart_n which_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v perform_v brentius_n homilia_fw-la 1._o in_o dom._n 13._o post_n trinit_fw-la none_o be_v ever_o find_v among_o the_o saint_n who_o love_v god_n perfect_o with_o all_o his_o soul_n caluin_n 2._o instit_fw-la c._n 7._o §_o 5._o i_o say_v there_o be_v no_o saint_n who_o while_o hart_n no_o saint_n ever_o love_v god_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n he_o be_v in_o this_o mortal_a life_n attain_v to_o that_o height_n of_o love_n that_o he_o love_v god_n with_o all_o his_o soul_n with_o all_o his_o hart_n with_o all_o his_o power_n pareus_n l._n 4_o the_o justif_a c._n 11._o such_o love_n of_o all_o his_o soul_n none_o of_o the_o saint_n have_v or_o can_v have_v in_o this_o infirmity_n daneus_fw-la contr._n 5._o p._n 973._o that_o this_o precept_n thou_o shall_v love_v god_n etc._n etc._n can_v be_v fulfil_v both_o under_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o that_o god_n promise_v it_o deuter._n 10._o v._o 12._o 30._o v._o 6._o hier._n 24._o v._n 7._o be_v most_o false_a the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o teach_v that_o god_n will_v make_v the_o faithful_a to_o love_v he_o with_o all_o their_o hart_n that_o the_o three_o child_n follow_v god_n in_o all_o their_o hart_n that_o david_n seek_v god_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n that_o god_n use_v mercy_n to_o they_o who_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o all_o their_o heart_n that_o josias_n return_v to_o god_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n in_o all_o his_o soul_n in_o all_o his_o power_n and_o according_a to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o who_o love_v god_n so_o as_o the_o law_n require_v that_o no_o saint_n love_v god_n with_o all_o his_o hart_n that_o no_o saint_n ever_o have_v the_o love_n god_n in_o all_o his_o hart_n art_fw-la iv_o whether_o god_n law_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o any_o scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n hierem._n 31._o v._o 33._o i_o will_v give_v my_o law_n in_o their_o bowel_n and_o in_o their_o some_o god_n law_n in_o the_o hart_n of_o some_o hart_n i_o will_v write_v it_o psal_n 36._o 31._o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o his_o hart_n deut._n 30._o v._o 14._o but_o the_o word_n be_v very_o near_o thou_o in_o thy_o hart_n and_o in_o thy_o mouth_n to_o do_v it_o the_o same_o rom._n 10._o v._n 6._o catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o rom._n 10._o vers_fw-la 6._o the_o scripture_n here_o say_v plain_o the_o word_n be_v near_o that_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v it_o this_o be_v not_o true_a say_v the_o heretic_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n or_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n be_v not_o proper_o in_o our_o hart_n protestant_n express_o deny_v caluin_n in_o rom._n 10._o v._n 6._o even_o after_o regeneration_n the_o word_n none_o god_n law_n in_o the_o hart_n of_o none_o of_o the_o law_n can_v be_v proper_o say_v to_o be_v in_o our_o hart_n because_o it_o require_v perfection_n from_o which_o the_o faithful_a themselves_o be_v far_o of_o the_o same_o say_v other_o who_o teach_v that_o the_o law_n be_v impossible_a for_o if_o it_o be_v impossible_a it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o heart_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o god_n law_n be_v in_o our_o bowel_n be_v write_v in_o our_o heart_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o some_o the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o proper_o in_o the_o hart_n of_o any_o art_fw-la v._o whether_o we_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v fulfil_v god_n law_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n math._n 6._o v._n 10._o thy_o will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n law_n we_o pray_v to_o fulfil_v god_n law_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v c._n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-la bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la in_o part_n cap._n 6._o we_o pray_v that_o god_n help_n and_o grace_n be_v give_v we_o whereby_o we_o may_v and_o will_v fulfil_v god_n commandment_n protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n in_o gal._n 3._o to_o 2._o col_fw-fr 135._o we_o do_v not_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v so_o we_o pray_v not_o so_o fulfil_v the_o law_n but_o that_o we_o may_v endeavour_v according_a to_o our_o strength_n to_o fulfil_v it_o caluin_n in_o math._n 10._o v._n 6._o it_o suffice_v that_o with_o desire_n we_o testify_v that_o we_o hate_v whatsoever_o be_v against_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o like_a sort_n daneus_n in_o orat_fw-la dom._n and_o other_o who_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n for_o no_o man_n pray_v for_o that_o which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v impossible_a the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o bid_v we_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o in_o heaven_n where_o doubtless_o it_o be_v fulfil_v the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o teach_v that_o we_o do_v not_o pray_v that_o we_o fulfil_v god_n law_n that_o it_o suffice_v to_o testify_v that_o we_o hate_v what_o be_v contrary_a to_o god_n law_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n as_o sometime_o protestant_n themselves_n confess_v it_o see_v lib._n 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la vi_o whether_o the_o keep_v of_o the_o law_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n math._n 19_o v._n 17._o if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n salvation_n keep_v of_o the_o law_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n joan._n 15._o ver_fw-la 10._o if_o you_o keep_v my_o precept_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d_o stapleton_n in_o math._n 19_o v._n 17._o this_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n do_v manifest_o show_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o god_n commandment_n be_v necessary_a to_o everlasting_a life_n protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n in_o galat._n 2._o tom_n 5._o f._n 311._o the_o papist_n teach_v faith_n in_o necessary_a not_o necessary_a christ_n justifi_v but_o with_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n must_v be_v keep_v because_o the_o scripture_n say_v if_o thou_o will_v enter_v etc._n etc._n there_o christ_n be_v straight_o deny_v and_o abolish_v caluin_n in_o math._n 19_o ver_fw-la 17._o this_o answer_n of_o christ_n be_v legal_a that_o none_o be_v account_v just_a before_o god_n unless_o he_o
catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n of_o it_o nature_n require_v to_o be_v express_v by_o a_o proposition_n which_o be_v simple_o negative_a appear_v manifest_o first_o because_o their_o opinion_n of_o that_o matter_n be_v simple_o negative_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o opinion_n which_o be_v simple_o negative_a require_v to_o be_v express_v by_o the_o like_a proposition_n such_o as_o this_o be_v this_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n second_o because_o many_o and_o the_o learnede_a of_o the_o protestant_n and_o often_o time_n and_o in_o many_o place_n have_v express_v their_o opinion_n of_o this_o matter_n by_o such_o a_o proposition_n when_o they_o mean_v purposely_o to_o express_v it_o clear_o and_o distinct_o as_o it_o deffer_v from_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o c._n 11._o art_n 1._o who_o best_o know_v with_o what_o kind_n of_o proposition_n their_o opinion_n require_v to_o be_v express_v when_o it_o be_v most_o clear_o and_o distinct_o to_o be_v express_v when_o it_o be_v most_o clear_o and_o distinct_o to_o be_v declare_v and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o this_o matter_n of_o it_o nature_n require_v to_o be_v express_v by_o a_o proposition_n which_o be_v simple_o affirmative_a as_o this_o be_v this_o be_v christ_n body_n because_o their_o doctrine_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v simple_o affirmative_a and_o because_o catholics_n use_v to_o express_v their_o doctrine_n by_o this_o kind_n of_o proposition_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o same_o point_n of_o it_o nature_n require_v to_o be_v express_v by_o a_o proposition_n which_o be_v simple_o affirmative_a be_v manifest_a because_o she_o four_o time_n of_o purpose_n express_v her_o meaning_n of_o this_o matter_n she_o use_v a_o proposition_n which_o be_v simple_o affirmative_a and_o never_o use_v a_o proposition_n negative_a wherefore_o either_o the_o scripture_n never_o express_v her_o meaning_n of_o this_o matter_n in_o such_o a_o proposition_n as_o of_o it_o nature_n it_o require_v to_o be_v express_v withal_o but_o always_o by_o a_o contrary_a kind_n of_o proposition_n and_o then_o also_o when_o of_o purpose_n she_o mean_v to_o express_v her_o meaning_n most_o clear_o and_o distinct_o or_o the_o scripture_n meaning_n touch_v this_o matter_n of_o it_o nature_n require_v to_o be_v express_v by_o a_o proposition_n which_o be_v simple_o affirmative_a as_o this_o be_v this_o be_v my_o body_n or_o this_o be_v christ_n body_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o kind_n of_o proposition_n wherewith_o the_o scripture_n and_o catholics_n doctrine_n of_o this_o point_n require_v to_o be_v express_v to_o wit_n a_o proposition_n simple_o affirmative_a and_o the_o proposition_n wherewith_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o protestant_n of_o the_o same_o matter_n be_v to_o be_v express_v be_v quite_o opposite_a to_o wit_n the_o one_o simple_o affirmative_a the_o other_o simple_o negative_a and_o the_o like_a be_v their_o meaning_n but_o that_o the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n may_v better_o appear_v scripture_n 1._o head_n from_o the_o number_n of_o article_n in_o which_o protest_v contradict_v the_o scripture_n i_o will_v divide_v it_o into_o diverse_a head_n the_o first_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o multitude_n of_o matter_n of_o article_n in_o which_o protestant_n do_v contradict_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v as_o we_o have_v see_v 260_o and_o more_o for_o though_o it_o may_v chance_v that_o one_o once_o or_o twice_o or_o seldom_o may_v contradict_v the_o express_a word_n of_o a_o other_o and_o yet_o not_o contradict_v his_o sense_n or_o meaning_n yet_o it_o can_v no_o way_n be_v think_v that_o this_o can_v fall_v out_o so_o often_o because_o so_o great_a and_o so_o frequent_a opposition_n between_o their_o word_n can_v as_o i_o say_v before_o come_v by_o chance_n therefore_o it_o must_v rise_v of_o the_o opposition_n which_o be_v between_o their_o meaning_n for_o how_o shall_v their_o tongue_n so_o often_o jar_n whoses_z mind_n always_o agree_v how_o shall_v they_o who_o always_o mean_v the_o same_o so_o often_o speak_v contrariwise_o how_o shall_v the_o same_o sense_n and_o mind_n be_v express_v so_o often_o by_o contrary_a sign_n the_o second_o head_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o quality_n and_o contradict_v 2._o from_o the_o number_n of_o protest_v who_o do_v contradict_v multitude_n of_o protestant_n who_o have_v cross_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n for_o admit_v that_o some_o one_o or_o few_o protestant_n and_o those_o not_o the_o lest_o learned_a shall_v cross_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n shall_v not_o cross_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v altogether_o incredible_a that_o so_o many_o and_o so_o famous_a protestant_n shall_v so_o often_o fight_v with_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o their_o doctrine_n shall_v not_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o this_o their_o cross_v of_o the_o scripture_n word_n can_v not_o rise_v of_o chance_n because_o it_o be_v in_o so_o many_o protestant_n nor_o of_o ignorance_n because_o they_o be_v the_o learnede_a among_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o proceed_v of_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o their_o doctrine_n of_o it_o nature_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o scripture_n doctrine_n the_o three_o head_n be_v take_v of_o the_o manner_n wherewith_o contradict_v 3._o from_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o they_o contradict_v protestant_n cross_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n because_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o cross_v they_o so_o direct_o so_o plain_o so_o manifest_o as_o they_o cross_v the_o very_a word_n of_o catholics_n which_o of_o set_a purpose_n they_o contradict_v or_o as_o ever_o any_o heretik_a cross_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n or_o as_o any_o man_n can_v cross_v they_o wherefore_o either_o let_v they_o deny_v that_o the_o contradict_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n of_o d._n stapleton_n or_o c._n bellarmin_n which_o of_o purpose_n they_o do_v contradict_v or_o let_v they_o grant_v that_o they_o contradict_v also_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o let_v they_o say_v that_o the_o contradiction_n of_o sense_n or_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o to_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o any_o opposition_n in_o word_n though_o never_o so_o great_a and_o manifest_a but_o out_o of_o their_o pleasure_n beside_o either_o let_v they_o deny_v that_o ever_o any_o heretic_n contradict_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o let_v they_o grant_v the_o same_o of_o themselves_o see_v they_o have_v often_o time_n as_o direct_o and_o as_o evident_o cross_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o those_o speak_v of_o purpose_n for_o to_o declare_v the_o scripture_n meaning_n as_o ever_o any_o heretic_n cross_v the_o scripture_n word_n moreover_o they_o not_o only_o cross_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n as_o ditect_o and_o plain_o as_o ever_o any_o do_v but_o also_o they_o many_o time_n cross_v they_o in_o so_o many_a and_o so_o different_a form_n of_o speech_n as_o scarce_o any_o who_o will_v have_v it_o know_v that_o he_o do_v contradict_v the_o scripture_n meaning_n can_v divise_v more_o manner_n how_o to_o contradict_v it_o the_o four_o head_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o contradict_v 4._o from_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o word_n which_o they_o contradict_v word_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n do_v contradict_v for_o they_o be_v express_v formal_a clear_a not_o obscure_v nor_o doubtful_a and_o speak_v not_o by_o the_o way_n but_o of_o purpose_n for_o to_o express_v the_o scripture_n mean_v of_o those_o matter_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o all_o the_o article_n and_o what_o can_v be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o that_o be_v not_o which_o such_o kind_n of_o word_n do_v of_o themselves_o most_o evident_o afford_v or_o who_o can_v be_v think_v to_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n true_a meaning_n if_o he_o do_v not_o who_o contradict_v the_o evident_a sense_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o word_n sure_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o if_o these_o word_n be_v write_v in_o any_o other_o book_n then_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o protestant_n will_v confess_v that_o they_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o as_o well_o as_o they_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o catholics_n word_n for_o as_o s._n austin_n say_v in_o the_o like_a case_n of_o pelagian_o 9_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la peccat_fw-la mer._n c._n 9_o if_o i_o shall_v speak_v thus_o these_o will_v oppose_v and_o cry_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o well_o i_o think_v amiss_o for_o they_o will_v understand_v no_o
and_o that_o we_o shall_v right_o understand_v his_o meaning_n final_o christ_n hearer_n do_v contest_v the_o same_o for_o they_o be_v his_o apostle_n to_o who_o he_o have_v make_v know_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o of_o their_o part_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o speak_v otherwise_o than_o man_n use_v to_o do_v by_o such_o kind_n of_o word_n the_o seven_o head_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o nature_n or_o quality_n matter_n 7._o from_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o foresay_v article_n in_o which_o protestant_n contradict_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n together_o with_o protestant_n want_v of_o the_o like_a opposite_a word_n of_o scripture_n which_o may_v seem_v express_o and_o without_o any_o inference_n or_o exposition_n of_o protestant_n to_o teach_v as_o protestant_n do_v for_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o foresay_v article_n partly_o be_v such_o as_o the_o very_a light_n of_o reason_n do_v see_v that_o it_o be_v so_o as_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n do_v teach_v it_o to_o be_v to_o wit_n that_o god_n will_v not_o do_v not_o command_v not_o sin_n that_o he_o tempt_v not_o nor_o prodestinate_v man_n to_o sin_n that_o he_o justifi_v not_o the_o impious_a remain_a impious_a that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o the_o like_a partly_o be_v know_v to_o be_v such_o by_o very_a experience_n as_o that_o a_o man_n have_v free_a will_n in_o good_a and_o bad_a that_o he_o cooperate_v to_o his_o conversion_n that_o faith_n be_v a_o act_n of_o man_n and_o such_o other_o partly_o it_o be_v new_a never_o hear_v of_o before_o and_o far_o beyond_o the_o reach_n of_o all_o reason_n as_o be_v the_o eucharist_n and_o many_o more_o now_o protestant_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o matter_n want_n what_o kind_n of_o word_n protest_v want_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n and_o almost_o in_o all_o the_o foresay_v article_n want_v express_a word_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v of_o purpose_n speak_v to_o declare_v what_o a_o thing_n be_v and_o which_o of_o themselves_o plain_o and_o direct_o without_o any_o inference_n or_o exposition_n of_o man_n may_v so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v so_o as_o protestant_n teach_v see_v therefore_o that_o bring_v what_o kind_n of_o word_n catholics_n do_v bring_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o matter_n in_o controversy_n and_o in_o all_o the_o foresay_v article_n catholics_n do_v bring_v both_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n and_o speak_v of_o purpose_n to_o declare_v what_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v touch_v that_o article_n and_o which_o plain_o and_o direct_o according_a to_o their_o native_a and_o usual_a sense_n among_o man_n without_o any_o inference_n or_o exposition_n add_v to_o they_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v so_o as_o catholics_n teach_v and_o that_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o experience_n also_o contest_v the_o same_o sense_n in_o such_o matter_n as_o they_o can_v reach_v unto_o and_o that_o protestant_n in_o none_n or_o very_o few_o article_n can_v bring_v any_o such_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n which_o may_v so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o plain_a scripture_n what_o protest_v oppose_v against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o as_o those_o be_v for_o catholics_n but_o in_o all_o or_o all_o most_o all_o the_o say_v article_n only_o bring_v their_o inference_n or_o argument_n and_o those_o compose_v at_o least_o of_o one_o humane_a principle_n and_o that_o in_o matter_n which_o humane_a reason_n no_o way_n can_v reach_v unto_o it_o be_v mere_a madness_n to_o forsake_v the_o doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n holy_a father_n and_o counsel_n and_o the_o most_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n in_o all_o the_o say_v article_n and_o the_o very_a light_n of_o reason_n and_o experience_n itself_o in_o many_o of_o they_o and_o to_o harken_v to_o the_o inference_n consequence_n and_o humane_a argument_n of_o a_o few_o new_a and_o disagree_v heretic_n for_o example_n see_v the_o eucharist_n as_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n a_o sacrament_n institute_v of_o christ_n and_o a_o gift_n give_v of_o he_o to_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v only_o a_o seal_n of_o grace_n as_o protestant_n will_v or_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n as_o catholics_n believe_v be_v a_o new_a thing_n institute_v first_o of_o christ_n and_o never_o hear_v of_o before_o nor_o fall_v under_o the_o reach_n of_o sense_n or_o reason_n but_o only_o of_o faith_n and_o be_v such_o as_o christ_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v be_v it_o not_o word_n madness_n to_o follow_v man_n consequence_n rather_o than_o god_n word_n madness_n to_o gather_v what_o it_o be_v rather_o by_o the_o humane_a inference_n or_o argument_n compose_v of_o some_o few_o new_a and_o disagree_v man_n of_o one_o humane_a principle_n at_o least_o then_o by_o christ_n own_a word_n and_o those_o most_o express_a and_o speak_v of_o he_o purposely_o for_o to_o tell_v we_o most_o clear_o what_o he_o will_v have_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v for_o who_o well_o in_o his_o wit_n will_v persuade_v himself_o either_o that_o these_o man_n by_o their_o humane_a argument_n perceive_v better_a what_o a_o thing_n which_o fall_v not_o under_o reason_n be_v than_o christ_n who_o institute_v it_o or_o that_o they_o know_v better_a what_o christ_n will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v than_o christ_n himself_o or_o that_o they_o express_v christ_n meaning_n more_o clear_o by_o their_o argument_n and_o consequence_n quite_o opposite_a to_o christ_n word_n than_o he_o have_v do_v by_o his_o own_o express_a word_n speak_v by_o himself_o of_o purpose_n for_o to_o declare_v his_o meaning_n or_o final_o that_o christ_n express_v his_o meaning_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n by_o a_o humane_a principle_n no_o where_o deliver_v of_o he_o and_o a_o humane_a argument_n never_o make_v of_o he_o and_o that_o also_o direct_o opposite_a to_o his_o own_o express_a word_n better_a than_o by_o his_o own_o most_o express_a and_o clear_a word_n and_o those_o of_o purpose_n speak_v for_o to_o express_v clear_o what_o he_o will_v have_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v can_v any_o man_n believe_v that_o a_o few_o new_a and_o disagree_v man_n do_v understand_v the_o supernatural_a matter_n of_o faith_n better_o than_o god_n himself_o or_o that_o they_o declare_v better_a what_o they_o be_v by_o their_o humane_a inference_n and_o argument_n compose_v of_o humane_a principle_n they_o god_n himself_o do_v by_o his_o own_o express_a word_n speak_v by_o he_o of_o purpose_n for_o to_o declare_v what_o they_o be_v what_o it_o be_v to_o prefer_v man_n word_n before_o god_n word_n and_o man_n before_o god_n if_o this_o be_v not_o or_o do_v any_o wise_a man_n teach_v new_a notethis_n notethis_n thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v of_o we_o and_o which_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o his_o teach_n and_o that_o but_o once_o in_o his_o life_n and_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n only_o by_o contrary_n to_o wit_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o indeed_o and_o never_o say_v that_o they_o be_v that_o which_o true_o they_o be_v and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n the_o wisdom_n of_o his_o father_n do_v once_o only_o in_o his_o life_n and_o near_o unto_o his_o death_n teach_v we_o what_o the_o eucharist_n be_v which_o be_v then_o a_o new_a thing_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o and_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v of_o we_o and_o yet_o can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o by_o his_o teach_n only_o by_o the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n by_o say_v most_o express_o that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n give_v and_o break_v for_o we_o &_o never_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o body_n but_o only_o a_o figure_n thereof_o if_o indeed_o it_o only_o be_v a_o figure_n as_o protestant_n believe_v will_v god_n or_o god_n scripture_n as_o s._n austin_n write_v 7._o ●_o 33._o cont_n fa●stum_fw-la c._n 7._o speak_v in_o a_o other_o manner_n to_o we_o then_o we_o be_v no_o sure_o unless_o it_o will_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o us._n and_o who_o will_v say_v that_o contrary_n be_v it_o man_n custom_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o contrary_n it_o be_v our_o manner_n to_o be_v teach_v new_a thing_n and_o that_o but_o once_o and_o which_o can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o some_o master_n teach_v not_o by_o our_o master_n express_a word_n speak_v by_o he_o of_o purpose_n for_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v but_o by_o a_o quite_o opposite_a discourse_n not_o make_v of_o he_o but_o of_o some_o other_o and_o consist_v at_o least_o of_o one_o principle_n which_o he_o never_o allow_v by_o these_o reader_n thou_o see_v clear_o as_o i_o hope_v that_o if_o none_o ether_n protest_v contradict_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o
of_o the_o anthropomorphites_n than_o thou_o can_v object_v it_o to_o we_o in_o this_o mystery_n for_o the_o anthropomorphites_n in_o no_o place_n of_o scripture_n have_v a_o express_a word_n which_o direct_o say_v god_n have_v a_o body_n we_o have_v a_o most_o express_a word_n wherewith_o christ_n say_v most_o direct_o of_o that_o which_o he_o give_v to_o his_o apostle_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o anthropomorphites_n have_v no_o express_a word_n which_o be_v of_o purpose_n speak_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o god_n be_v we_o have_v a_o express_a word_n speak_v purposely_o to_o this_o end_n and_o only_o to_o this_o end_n to_o tell_v we_o what_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o anthropomorphites_n have_v no_o express_a word_n which_o any_o circunstance_n of_o moment_n do_v convince_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o their_o proper_a sense_n we_o have_v a_o express_a word_n which_o all_o circustance_n do_v confirm_v aught_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o their_o native_a and_o usual_a signification_n the_o anthropomorphites_n have_v a_o word_n but_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o the_o very_a light_n of_o reason_n do_v show_v to_o be_v otherwise_o then_o the_o word_n do_v signify_v we_o have_v the_o word_n of_o a_o new_a thing_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o and_o which_o can_v no_o way_n be_v know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n but_o only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n final_o to_o omit_v all_o other_o difference_n take_v from_o the_o church_n father_n and_o counsel_n the_o anthropomorphites_n have_v the_o word_n of_o a_o matter_n which_o the_o scripture_n other_o where_o most_o manifest_o deni_v we_o have_v the_o word_n of_o a_o matter_n which_o 4._o deuter._n 4._o actor_n 7._o joan._n 4._o the_o scripture_n no_o where_o direct_o either_o clear_o or_o obscu_o deni_v nether_a the_o denial_n thereof_o can_v any_o way_n be_v wroung_a out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o add_v a_o false_a humane_a principle_n and_o by_o make_v a_o deceitful_a humane_a argument_n thus_o many_o and_o thus_o great_a difference_n be_v there_o between_o the_o word_n wherewith_o we_o make_v the_o eucharist_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o word_n wherewith_o the_o anthropomorphites_n make_v god_n to_o have_v a_o body_n as_o i_o think_v be_v not_o between_o the_o word_n which_o the_o anthropomorphites_n allege_v and_o the_o word_n wherewith_o any_o other_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v prove_v and_o thus_o much_o touch_v the_o first_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o opposition_n betwixt_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o protestant_n in_o 260._o article_n and_o such_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v speak_v of_o purpose_n for_o to_o tell_v we_o what_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o in_o their_o open_a and_o plain_a sense_n which_o they_o manifest_o show_v and_o in_o which_o such_o word_n use_v to_o be_v speak_v and_o understand_v of_o man_n which_o argument_n as_o a_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v shall_v be_v include_v in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o chapter_n ii_o that_o protestant_n confess_v that_o they_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n many_o age_n ago_o and_o many_o of_o themselves_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o second_o argument_n wherewith_o we_o will_v prove_v that_o protestant_n contradict_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o will_v take_v from_o their_o confession_n wherein_o they_o confess_v that_o they_o contradict_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n of_o which_o some_o of_o they_o to_o let_v pass_v all_o other_o proof_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o diverse_a protestant_n and_o all_o of_o they_o be_v many_o age_n ago_o judge_v by_o the_o catholic_a epistle_n lutheran_n confess_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v against_o s._n james_n epistle_n church_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o luther_n and_o the_o lutheran_n protestant_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o protestancie_n to_o wit_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n do_v very_o contradict_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n where_o he_o say_v you_o see_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o for_o thus_o write_v luther_n in_o his_o preface_n upon_o that_o epistle_n i_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o write_n of_o no_o apostle_n for_o this_o cause_n first_o because_o direct_o against_o s._n paul_n and_o all_o other_o scripture_n it_o attribute_v justification_n to_o work_n and_o in_o dote_v luther_n say_v s._n james_n dote_v c._n 22._o gen._n tom_n 6._o fol._n 282._o james_n conclude_v ill_a it_o follow_v not_o as_o james_n doat_v therefore_o the_o fruit_n do_v justify_v let_v our_o adversary_n therefore_o be_v pack_v with_o their_o james._n melancthon_n de_fw-fr sacris_fw-la contion_n to_o 2._o fol._n 23._o but_o if_o they_o can_v be_v mitigate_v by_o any_o exposition_n as_o those_o word_n of_o james_n you_o see_v etc._n etc._n these_o absolute_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v magdelburgenses_n ceatur_fw-la 1._o l._n 2._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 54._o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n swerve_v not_o a_o little_a from_o the_o analogy_n of_o apostolic_a doctrine_n while_o it_o ascribe_v justification_n not_o to_o faith_n only_o but_o to_o work_n and_o centur._n 2._o c._n 4._o col_fw-fr 71._o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n attribute_v justice_n to_o work_n contrary_a to_o paul_n and_o all_o other_o scripture_n schlusselburg_n lib._n 1._o theol._n caluin_n art_n 15._o fol._n 50._o james_n contrary_a to_o paul_n attribute_v justice_n to_o work_n and_o tom_n 8._o catal._n haeret._n pag._n 500_o he_o say_v of_o s._n james._n he_o fight_v direct_o with_o paul_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o give_v justice_n before_o god_n to_o man_n work_n the_o same_o confess_v pomeranus_n and_o vitus_n theodorus_n cite_v by_o coccius_n to_o 1._o lib._n 6._o art_n 23._o and_o pappus_n cite_v by_o gretser_n l._n 1._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 18._o and_o the_o same_o be_v insinuate_v by_o hunnius_n de_fw-fr justific_n pag._n 219._o whereupon_o daneus_n in_o enchirid._n augustini_fw-la c._n 67._o say_v it_o trouble_v many_o now_o a_o day_n so_o that_o some_o have_v cast_v out_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n other_o have_v call_v it_o straweish_a and_o pareus_n l._n 4._o the_o justif_a c._n 18._o luther_n can_v not_o accord_v james_n with_o paul_n but_o by_o cast_v away_o the_o whole_a epistle_n beza_n also_o in_o jac._n 2._o v._n 14._o many_o have_v cast_v away_o this_o epistle_n for_o this_o cause_n as_o if_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o true_a doctrine_n nether_a do_v only_a lutheran_n judge_v thus_o of_o s._n james_n his_o epistle_n but_o also_o some_o sacramentary_n for_o musculus_fw-la de_fw-la locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr james._n some_o sacramentary_n reject_v saint_n james._n justificat_fw-la say_v that_o impertinentlie_o he_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o abraham_n that_o he_o confound_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n and_o set_v down_o a_o sentence_n different_a from_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o ib._n tit_n de_fw-fr scripture_n pa._n 172._o plain_o profess_v that_o he_o hould_v it_o not_o for_o authentical_a scripture_n and_o the_o confession_n heluet._n c._n 15._o say_v the_o same_o say_v he_o james_n not_o contradict_v s._n paul_n otherwise_o he_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v and_o nevertheless_o common_o all_o sacramentary_n account_v s._n james_n epistle_n to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o english_a french_a and_o flemish_a protestant_n have_v put_v it_o in_o their_o confession_n as_o a_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n wherefore_o thus_o i_o argue_v in_o form_n what_o contradict_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n contradict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o chief_a point_n of_o protestancie_n touch_v justification_n by_o only_a faith_n contradict_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n therefore_o it_o contradict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o mayor_n or_o first_o proporsition_n be_v not_o only_o believe_v and_o teach_v of_o all_o catholics_n but_o also_o commonelie_o of_o sacramentary_n and_o the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n be_v grant_v by_o the_o lutheran_n in_o like_a sort_n all_o protestant_n acknowledge_v their_o doctrine_n etc._n protestant_n confess_v that_o they_o teach_v contrary_a to_o machab._n toby_n etc._n etc._n of_o not_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v contrary_a to_o those_o word_n of_o 2._o machab._n c._n 12._o it_o be_v a_o holy_a and_o wholesome_a cogitation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v loose_a from_o their_o sin_n whereupon_o caluin_n in_o antidoto_fw-la council_n trident._n sess_v 4._o p._n 265._o say_v out_o of_o the_o 2._o of_o macchabee_n both_o purgatory_n will_v be_v prove_v and_o the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n out_o of_o toby_n satisfaction_n exorcism_n and_o what_o not_o they_o will_v borrow_v no_o few_o matter_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la
for_o from_o whence_o may_v they_o better_o draw_v their_o dregs_n so_o plain_o he_o confess_v that_o his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o foresay_v point_n contradict_v the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n toby_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o notwithstanding_o s._n austin_n who_o 26._o who_o caluin_n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 14._o §._o 26._o protestant_n account_v the_o best_a witness_n of_o antiquity_n clearelie_o testify_v that_o many_o age_n ago_o the_o holy_a church_n hold_v the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v of_o they_o lib._n 18._o de_fw-la civitat_fw-la c._n 36._o which_o not_o jew_n but_o the_o church_n hold_v for_o canonical_a and_o the_o like_a he_o say_v lib._n 1_o count_v gaudent_fw-la cap._n 23._o 4._o lib._n the_o doctrine_n christ_n c._n 8._o l._n 2._o retract_v c._n 4._o and_o otherwhere_o beside_o many_o protestantt_n as_o caluin_n in_o antidote_n cit_fw-la p._n 266._o whitaker_n contr._n 3._o q._n 6._o c._n 3._o perkins_n de_fw-fr symbol_n p._n 787._o and_o also_o hyperius_n zanchius_n lubbertus_n hospinian_n rainolds_n feild_n and_o other_o allege_v in_o the_o protestant_n apology_n tract_n 1._o sect._n 3._o confess_v that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n where_o s._n austin_n be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v thereto_o do_v reckon_v the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n in_o the_o number_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o to_o omit_v all_o other_o argument_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n the_o protestant_n themselves_o eftsoon_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n can_v discern_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a and_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o yield_v to_o her_o judgement_n for_o thus_o say_v luther_n l._n de_fw-la captivit_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 84._o this_o indeed_o have_v the_o church_n that_o she_o can_v discern_v judge_v the_o church_n can_v discern_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_v the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o the_o word_n of_o man_n as_o austin_n confess_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o confession_n of_o wittenberg_n cap._n de_fw-fr eccles_n the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o doctrine_n and_o cap._n de_fw-la concilijs_fw-la she_o have_v a_o assure_a promise_n of_o the_o perpetual_a presence_n of_o christ_n and_o she_o be_v govern_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n melancthon_n respon_n ad_fw-la acta_fw-la ratisbon_n tom_fw-mi 3._o pag._n 732._o we_o acknowledge_v this_o authority_n of_o testify_v the_o apostolical_a scripture_n or_o discern_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o counterfeit_a do_v agree_v to_o the_o true_a church_n caluin_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la ref_o p._n 232._o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o church_n to_o discern_v true_a church_n the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o church_n scripture_n from_o counterfeit_n peter_n martyr_n praefat._n 1._o epist_n ad_fw-la corinth_n we_o will_v easy_o grant_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v endue_v so_o much_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o by_o his_o lead_n and_o direction_n they_o easy_o discern_v between_o those_o which_o be_v propose_v to_o they_o which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o this_o spiritual_a power_n they_o distinguish_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n from_o apocryphal_a book_n and_o in_o locis_fw-la class_n 1._o c._n 6._o §_o 6._o we_o acknowledge_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v that_o be_v endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n she_o may_v distinguish_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a book_n of_o holy_a writ_n from_o counterfeit_n and_o apocryphal_a jewel_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n pag._n 204._o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n scripture_n she_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n can_v discern_v true_a scripture_n whereby_o she_o may_v discern_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a fulke_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o a_o false_a cathol_n p._n 5._o the_o church_n of_o christ_n indeed_o can_v discern_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a perkins_n de_fw-fr serm._n dom._n tom_n 2._o col_fw-fr 252._o the_o church_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o judge_v of_o great_a matter_n she_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n judge_v have_v the_o gift_n of_o judge_v which_o be_v canonical_a which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n and_o of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o sure_o can_v judge_v which_o company_n of_o man_n be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o be_v not_o whitaker_n cont._n 1._o q._n 3._o c._n 1._o pag._n 315._o we_o deny_v not_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o approve_v to_o acknowledge_v to_o receive_v to_o promulgate_v to_o commend_v the_o scripture_n to_o all_o her_o child_n and_o we_o say_v that_o this_o testimony_n be_v true_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v admit_v of_o all_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 316._o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o judge_v and_o discern_v true_a sincere_a and_o right_a scripture_n from_o false_a counterfeit_a and_o bastard_n and_o for_o to_o discharge_v distinguish_v have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o distinguish_v this_o office_n she_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o she_o may_v distinguish_v truth_n from_o lie_n she_o know_v the_o voice_n of_o her_o spouse_n she_o be_v most_o judicious_a and_o can_v discern_v spirit_n cap._n 5._o p._n convince_v her_o tradition_n convince_v 322._o i_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o argument_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v convince_v which_o kooke_n be_v canonical_a which_o not_o canonical_a cap._n 6._o pag._n 323._o the_o church_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o which_o be_v teach_v she_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o he_o spouse_n and_o acknowledge_v his_o doctrine_n cap._n 7._o pag._n 324._o indeed_o we_o may_v compel_v her_o authority_n compel_v be_v compel_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n i_o say_v as_o i_o often_o say_v before_o that_o we_o be_v compel_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o believe_v these_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 326._o we_o grant_v with_o ireney_n demonstration_n a_o sound_a demonstration_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o sound_n and_o brief_a demunstration_n a_o posteriori_fw-la of_o canonical_a doctrine_n and_o l._n 1._o de_fw-la scriptura_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 9_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o who_o receave_v it_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o sacrilege_n and_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o sect_n 4._o p._n 227._o i_o say_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v sufficient_a to_o refute_v and_o convince_v those_o who_o think_v amiss_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o like_a he_o have_v ib._n p._n 218._o 228._o and_o and_z other_z where_o often_o out_o of_o which_o confession_n of_o protestant_n of_o the_o authorite_n and_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o discern_v and_o distinguish_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a we_o may_v thus_o argue_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n yea_o it_o be_v her_o function_n and_o proper_a office_n to_o discern_v true_a scripture_n from_o false_a she_o have_v that_o she_o can_v distinguish_v the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o the_o word_n of_o man_n she_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o judge_v the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n for_o to_o discern_v by_o her_o tradition_n it_o may_v be_v convince_v which_o book_n be_v canonical_a which_o not_o by_o her_o authority_n we_o may_v be_v compel_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n her_o authority_n be_v a_o sound_a demonstration_n of_o canonical_a doctrine_n her_o testimony_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o and_o who_o receave_v it_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o sacrilege_n but_o this_o holy_a church_n many_o age_n ago_o have_v judge_v the_o book_n of_o macchabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a therefore_o they_o be_v such_o the_o mayor_n or_o first_o proposition_n be_v the_o confession_n of_o protestant_n now_o rehearse_v and_o the_o minor_a be_v confirm_v by_o the_o foresay_v testimony_n of_o s._n austin_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o forename_a protestant_n and_o howsoever_o protestant_n protest_v the_o cath._n advantage_n over_o protest_v will_v delude_v this_o argument_n they_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o catholics_n have_v the_o advantage_n of_o they_o in_o that_o protestant_n produce_v no_o testimony_n which_o force_v catholik_o to_o reject_v any_o book_n which_o any_o father_n testify_v to_o have_v be_v ancient_o hold_v of_o the_o church_n for_o canonical_a as_o catholics_n produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n james_n which_o make_v the_o lutheran_n to_o reject_v his_o epistle_n which_o other_o protestant_n confess_v to_o be_v canonical_a and_o a_o other_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o book_n
the_o subsidio_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 253._o of_o which_o corruption_n of_o scripture_n thus_o write_v illyricus_n upon_o this_o place_n some_o corrupt_v this_o text_n by_o translate_n the_o cup_n of_o thanks_o give_v by_o which_o we_o give_v thanks_o and_o the_o text_n so_o corrupt_v they_o use_v in_o their_o liturgy_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n or_o holy_a supper_n make_v a_o double_a sacrilege_n caluin_n also_o in_o math._n 26._o ver_fw-la 26._o not_o only_o expound_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o he_o give_v thank_n but_o also_o in_o the_o very_a text_n translate_v it_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o and_o yet_o as_o himself_o confess_v there_o matthew_n and_o mark_n use_v the_o word_n of_o blessing_n why_o therefore_o will_v not_o he_o use_v the_o same_o word_n in_o s._n mathews_n text_n because_o those_o word_n act_n 2._o v._o 27._o because_o thou_o will_v not_o change_v they_o change_v leave_v my_o soul_n in_o hell_n prove_v that_o christ_n soul_n descend_v into_o hell_n beza_n in_o his_o translation_n an._n 1557._o thus_o change_v the_o text_n because_o thou_o will_v not_o leave_v my_o carcase_n in_o the_o grave_n et_fw-la ad_fw-la defence_n castell_n p._n 460._o he_o say_v my_o soul_n in_o the_o text_n i_o do_v translate_v my_o carcase_n but_o in_o my_o note_n my_o life_n but_o we_o may_v also_o take_v my_o soul_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o pronoune_n me._n which_o exposition_n say_v he_o be_v most_o plain_a and_o he_o add_v where_o as_o i_o note_v that_o by_o the_o ancient_a translation_n my_o soul_n the_o error_n rise_v i_o do_v it_o not_o without_o cause_n since_o we_o see_v that_o papist_n wrest_v this_o place_n especial_o for_o to_o settle_v their_o limbus_n and_o the_o father_n from_o thence_o devise_v that_o descent_n of_o christ_n soul_n into_o hell_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o be_v force_v to_o alter_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o he_o speak_v against_o i_o in_o like_a sort_n because_o we_o prove_v the_o same_o out_o of_o that_o passage_n act._n 2._o v._o 3●_n foresee_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o nether_a be_v he_o leave_v in_o hell_n etc._n etc._n the_o french_a bibles_n an._n 1562._o 1567._o 1568._o 1605._o of_o hell_n have_v make_v grave_a as_o also_o have_v tremellius_n do_v in_o his_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n nevew_v by_o junius_n &_o print_v at_o hannow_n 1603._o because_o those_o word_n psalm_n 5._o verss_n 5._o thou_o be_v not_o a_o god_n change_v they_o change_v that_o will_v iniquity_n prove_v that_o god_n no_o way_n will_v iniquity_n or_o sin_n the_o king_n bible_n translate_v the_o place_n thus_o that_o have_v pleasure_n in_o wickedness_n the_o french_a bibles_n an._n 1568._o that_o love_v iniquity_n and_o those_o of_o 1588._o and_o 1610._o that_o be_v not_o delight_v with_o iniquity_n and_o the_o like_a have_v piscator_fw-la apud_fw-la vorstium_fw-la in_o parasceve_fw-la cap._n 3._o and_o tremellius_n in_o this_o place_n that_o so_o they_o may_v defend_v their_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n that_o god_n will_v iniquity_n though_o he_o do_v not_o love_v it_o because_o these_o word_n ezechiel_n 33._o vers_fw-la 11._o live_v i_o say_v change_v they_o change_v our_o lord_n i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o that_o he_o be_v convert_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v do_v prove_v that_o god_n of_o himself_o will_v no_o man_n death_n the_o king_n bible_n translate_v they_o thus_o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o also_o do_v musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr veritate_fw-la tremellius_n in_o this_o place_n piscator_fw-la in_o thesibus_fw-la l._n 2._o p._n 187._o and_o other_o that_o god_n may_v seem_v of_o himself_o to_o will_v man_n death_n though_o he_o take_v not_o pleasure_n in_o it_o as_o say_v they_o a_o sick_a man_n will_v a_o bitter_a potion_n though_o he_o take_v no_o delight_n in_o it_o because_o the_o word_n 2._o thessalon_n 2._o v._n 15._o hold_v the_o tradition_n change_v they_o change_v which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n do_v prove_v that_o tradition_n not_o write_v be_v as_o well_o to_o be_v hold_v as_o those_o that_o be_v write_v beza_n in_o his_o translation_n an._n 1598._o change_v the_o disiunctive_a particle_n whether_o into_o the_o coniunctive_a also_o in_o this_o manner_n hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v by_o speech_n and_o also_o by_o our_o epistle_n who_o fallow_a author_n respon_n ad_fw-la thesis_n vadimontanas_fw-la pag._n 647._o and_o other_o an_o other_o translation_n of_o beza_n in_o tremellius_n have_v thus_o hold_v the_o deliver_v doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v both_o by_o speech_n and_o by_o epistle_n where_o for_o whether_o he_o have_v and_o and_o for_o tradition_n deliver_v doctrine_n as_o tremellius_n for_o tradition_n have_v commandment_n the_o french_a an._n 1568._o and_o 1605._o have_v institution_n and_o the_o queen_n bible_n have_v ordinance_n because_o those_o word_n 1._o timoth._n 2._o v._o 4._o who_o will_v all_o man_n change_v they_o change_v to_o be_v save_v show_v that_o god_n have_v a_o will_n to_o save_v all_o man_n beza_n in_o that_o place_n change_v all_o into_o whosoever_o that_o god_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v only_o a_o will_n to_o save_v whatsoever_o kind_n of_o man_n in_o like_a sort_n ib._n v._n 6._o where_o the_o scripture_n say_v who_o give_v himself_o a_o redemption_n for_o all_o beza_n translate_v for_o whosoever_o because_o that_o speech_n 1._o timoth._n 4._o v._o 10._o who_o be_v the_o saniour_n change_v they_o change_v of_o all_o man_n especial_o of_o the_o faithful_a declare_v that_o christ_n redeem_v all_o man_n beza_n in_o that_o place_n in_o steed_n of_o saviour_n put_v preserver_n and_o say_v because_o the_o name_n of_o saviour_n trouble_v many_o in_o that_o common_o it_o signify_v eternal_a life_n purchase_v by_o christ_n therefore_o to_o avoid_v ambiguity_n i_o choose_v rather_o to_o say_v preserver_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v because_o the_o word_n which_o the_o scripture_n use_v do_v show_v that_o christ_n purchase_v eternal_a life_n for_o all_o therefore_o i_o have_v change_v it_o for_o a_o other_o because_o those_o word_n coloss_n 1._o v._n 10._o that_o you_o may_v walk_v change_v they_o change_v worthy_a of_o god_n and_o 1._o thessalon_n 2._o v._n 11._o we_o have_v adiur_v every_o one_o of_o you_o that_o you_o walk_v worthy_a of_o god_n and_o 3._o epistle_n of_o 5._o ihon._n v._n 6._o who_o thou_o shall_v do_v well_o bring_v on_o their_o way_n in_o manner_n worthy_a of_o god_n do_v show_v that_o good_a work_n may_v be_v worthy_a of_o god_n beza_n in_o all_o these_o place_n for_o worthy_a of_o god_n have_v agreeable_a to_o god_n tremellius_n 1_o coloss_n v._o 10._o for_o worthy_a of_o god_n have_v it_o be_v just_a and_o 1._o thessaly_n 2._o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n the_o king_n bible_n 3_o joan._n 6._o cit_fw-la have_v after_o a_o godly_a sort_n because_o christ_n word_n lucae_n 7._o for_o 47._o many_o sin_n be_v change_v they_o change_v forgive_v she_o because_o she_o have_v love_v much_o insinuate_v justification_n by_o work_n beza_n in_o place_n of_o because_o in_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translate_v for._n and_o add_v that_o he_o do_v so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o easy_o perceave_v that_o in_o these_o word_n be_v not_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o king_n bible_n illyricus_n and_o other_o follow_v beza_n herein_o because_o those_o word_n of_o s._n luke_n c._n 1._o v._n 6._o they_o be_v both_o ill_o they_o translate_v ill_o just_a before_o god_n walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n and_o iustification_n of_o our_o lord_n without_o blame_n help_v to_o prove_v that_o good_a work_n be_v iustification_n and_o do_v justify_v beza_n though_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o greek_a word_n which_o s._n luke_n use_v be_v to_o be_v literal_o translate_v justification_n yet_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o so_o interpret_v it_o that_o say_v he_o i_o may_v take_v away_o this_o occasion_n of_o impugn_v justification_n by_o only_o faith_n and_o so_o in_o steed_n of_o justification_n have_v rite_n tremellius_n have_v righteousness_n queen_n elizabeth_n and_o king_n james_n bible_n ordinance_n because_o those_o word_n philip._n 2._o v._n 12._o work_v your_o salvation_n ill_a translate_v ill_a with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a prove_v that_o we_o may_v work_v our_o salvation_n the_o french_a bibles_n an._n 1562._o 1568._o 1605._o 1610._o in_o steed_n of_o work_n have_v endeavour_v you_o that_o the_o scripture_n may_v seem_v only_o to_o say_v that_o we_o may_v endeavour_v to_o work_v but_o not_o work_v our_o salvation_n because_o those_o word_n james_n 5._o v._o 16._o confess_v
word_n of_o christ_n but_o think_v of_o some_o other_o thing_n and_o with_o inward_a eye_n behold_v they_o as_o mystery_n and_o victorinus_n ib._n in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o must_v look_v with_o the_o left_a eye_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o with_o the_o right_n behold_v the_o nature_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o writing_n of_o antiquity_n you_o see_v they_o profess_v that_o the_o foundation_n and_o strength_n of_o their_o opinion_n be_v a_o humane_a principle_n that_o their_o reason_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o christ_n word_n that_o we_o must_v not_o simple_o look_v upon_o christ_n word_n but_o think_v upon_o some_o other_o thing_n that_o we_o must_v look_v upon_o christ_n word_n with_o the_o left_a eye_n and_o with_o the_o right_n upon_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o suencfeldius_n in_o schlusselburg_n art_n 23._o cit_fw-la remove_v say_v he_o from_o thy_o sight_n take_v and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o then_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n body_n of_o eat_v of_o sacrament_n and_o of_o old_a figure_n and_o so_o thou_o shall_v find_v most_o certain_a truth_n in_o like_a sort_n they_o confess_v that_o they_o learn_v not_o their_o faith_n out_o of_o scripture_n zuinglius_fw-la resp_n ad_fw-la serm._n lutheri_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 372._o faith_n can_v be_v learn_v or_o discuss_v out_o of_o word_n but_o the_o scripture_n protest_v have_v not_o their_o faith_n out_o of_o scripture_n teacher_n of_o it_o be_v god_n and_o after_o we_o have_v it_o deliver_v from_o he_o we_o may_v see_v the_o same_o in_o word_n and_o in_o exegesi_n fol._n 347._o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o faith_n can_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o word_n but_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o mistress_n the_o word_n which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o may_v be_v understand_v how_o i_o pray_v you_o shall_v we_o gather_v faith_n out_o of_o word_n since_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o come_v to_o expound_v scripture_n but_o be_v already_o arm_v with_o faith_n and_o oecolampadius_n in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o histor_n fol._n 70._o i_o come_v not_o to_o scripture_n but_o be_v before_o hand_n arm_v with_o faith_n their_o first_o shift_n be_v to_o scoff_n and_o deride_v the_o manner_n of_o scripture_n protec_v soffe_fw-ge at_o plain_a proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n argue_v out_o of_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n p._n martyr_n in_o schlusselburg_n l._n 4._o theol._n caluin_n artic_a 20._o call_v our_o argument_n take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n a_o five_o word_n proof_n and_o in_o dial._n col_fw-fr 130._o thus_o speak_v i_o always_o think_v that_o you_o be_v not_o so_o wise_a as_o you_o enough_o god_n word_n not_o enough_o shall_v be_v in_o labour_v so_o much_o for_o a_o opinion_n both_o absurd_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o have_v nothing_o to_o maintain_v it_o but_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n caluin_n 1._o instit_fw-la cap._n 2._o §_o 3._o say_v that_o they_o be_v mad_a who_o endeavour_n to_o defend_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o saint_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o cherubin_n the_o same_o say_v hospin_n l._n the_o orig_n templorum_fw-la pag._n 254._o and_o beza_n 2._o part_n respon_n ad_fw-la colloq_fw-la montisbel_n pag._n 31._o term_v the_o same_o a_o stink_a argument_n whitaker_n ad_fw-la rat._n 3._o campiani_n make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o sophism_n saint_n james_n command_v to_o word_n foolish_a to_o strive_v about_o christ_n word_n anoint_v the_o sick_a therefore_o we_o must_v anoint_v they_o zuinglius_fw-la de_fw-la peccat_fw-la orig_n tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 122._o say_v how_o foolish_a shall_v he_o seem_v who_o for_o word_n of_o scripture_n will_v avouch_v that_o we_o be_v wash_v from_o original_a sin_n by_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n oecolampadius_n complain_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v object_v to_o he_o as_o a_o helen_n and_o the_o sameword_n caluin_n term_v aiax_n his_o buckler_n and_o the_o only_a refuge_n of_o papist_n final_o they_o be_v sometime_o drive_v to_o blaspheme_v the_o scripture_n they_o blaspheme_v the_o very_a word_n of_o scripture_n word_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o say_v that_o they_o will_v neither_o believe_v they_o nor_o god_n himself_o p._n martyr_n cont_n gardiner_n col_fw-fr 423._o term_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n a_o little_a speech_n of_o five_o word_n and_o col_fw-fr 1095_o a_o five_o word_n speech_n zuinglius_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la billican_n tom_fw-mi 2._o f._n 264._o poor_a letter_n burensis_fw-la in_o schlusselburg_n praefat._n in_o tom_n 3._o catal._n haeret._n four_o impotent_a word_n sheldon_n l._n of_o antichrist_n pag._n 82._o in_o scoff_n five_o omnipotent_a word_n hospin_n part_n 2._o histor_n fol._n 63._o five_o magical_a word_n gratianus_n anties_n tom_n 6._o doctrinae_fw-la jesuit_n fol._n 158._o speak_v in_o this_o sort_n to_o be_v present_a according_a to_o gregory_n be_v to_o draw_v christ_n body_n out_o of_o heaven_n by_o fiveuerbicall_a or_o magical_a power_n volanus_fw-la l._n 2._o cont_n scargam_n pag._n 1047._o feign_v to_o yourselves_o a_o new_a christ_n of_o bread_n make_v by_o the_o five-word-breath_n of_o a_o priest_n moreover_o zuinglius_fw-la as_o before_o be_v rehearse_v call_v christ_n word_n of_o the_o indissolubilitie_n of_o marriage_n dry_a word_n and_o l._n de_fw-fr relig._n c._n de_fw-fr euchar._n say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o conscration_n be_v too_o dry_a for_o some_o man_n capacity_n poach_n in_o schlusselburg_n tom_fw-mi 4._o catal._n pag._n 305._o thus_o write_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o law_n since_o it_o nether_a lie_n god_n law_n in_o lie_n be_v christ_n nor_o in_o christ_n be_v contain_v in_o error_n lie_v and_o death_n and_o the_o scripture_n as_o luther_n say_v in_o his_o disputation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v against_o christ_n but_o for_o christ_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o he_o or_o not_o to_o be_v account_v true_a scripture_n luther_n be_v sore_o urge_v by_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n touch_v work_n and_o the_o law_n teach_v his_o follower_n to_o answer_v thus_o tom_n 5._o in_o 3._o galat._n fol._n 345._o simple_o we_o must_v answer_v in_o this_o sort_n here_o be_v christ_n there_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n touch_v work_n and_o the_o law_n but_o christ_n be_v lord_n of_o the_o scripture_n thou_o urge_v the_o servant_n that_o be_v the_o scripture_n this_o servant_n i_o papist_n luther_n leave_v the_o scripture_n to_o papist_n leave_v to_o thou_o i_o urge_v the_o lord_n who_o be_v king_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o speak_v yet_o more_o plain_o german_a edit_fw-la wittemb_v tom_fw-mi 1._o in_o these_o word_n albeit_o the_o papist_n do_v bring_v a_o huge_a load_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o good_a work_n be_v command_v i_o care_v nothing_o scripture_n he_o care_v not_o for_o all_o the_o scripture_n for_o all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o scripture_n though_o more_o be_v bring_v thou_o papist_n art_n very_o insolent_a and_o proud_a with_o the_o scripture_n which_o yet_o be_v under_o christ_n and_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o i_o be_o nothing_o it_o he_o be_v not_o move_v with_o it_o move_v thereby_o go_v too_o forsooth_o rely_v upon_o the_o servant_n as_o much_o as_o thou_o will_v but_o i_o rely_v upon_o christ_n the_o true_a master_n lord_n and_o emperor_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o i_o will_v believe_v and_o i_o know_v he_o can_v lie_v to_o i_o nor_o lead_v i_o into_o error_n i_o have_v rather_o honour_v and_o believe_v he_o then_o to_o suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v draw_v one_o finger_n breath_n from_o my_o opinion_n for_o all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o scripture_n loe_o how_o luther_n care_v not_o for_o all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v nothing_o move_v with_o will_v not_o alter_v his_o opinion_n for_o they_o all_o and_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o papist_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n tom_n 1._o disput_fw-la de_fw-fr fide_fw-la fol._n 387._o say_v but_o if_o our_o adversary_n urge_v the_o scripture_n against_o christ_n we_o urge_v christ_n against_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v the_o lord_n they_o have_v the_o servant_n scripture_n papist_n have_v the_o scripture_n and_o in_o colloq_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la fol._n 22._o speak_v of_o his_o follower_n say_v the_o scripture_n be_v contemn_v corrupt_a and_o mock_v of_o us._n yea_o zuinglius_fw-la in_o elencho_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 10._o affirm_v that_o when_o paul_n write_v the_o commentary_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o of_o authority_n and_o that_o paul_n do_v not_o attribute_v so_o much_o to_o his_o epistle_n as_o that_o divine_a paul_n do_v not_o think_v his_o epistle_n divine_a whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o be_v holy_a the_o like_a be_v insinuate_v by_o
paul_n speak_v not_o simple_o but_o by_o way_n of_o contention_n or_o argue_v let_v we_o therefore_o remember_v that_o here_o he_o dispute_v not_o of_o ceremony_n take_v in_o their_o true_a and_o natural_a signification_n hut_n wrest_v to_o false_a and_o wicked_a interpretation_n not_o of_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o they_o but_o of_o their_o superstitious_a abuse_n diverse_a time_n also_o they_o be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v after_o a_o humane_a manner_n and_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n capacity_n or_o error_n of_o other_o not_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o if_o we_o prove_v that_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o alm_n because_o christ_n say_v luc._n 16._o v._n 9_o make_v unto_o you_o friend_n of_o the_o mammon_n of_o iniquity_n that_o when_o you_o fail_v they_o may_v receive_v you_o into_o the_o eternal_a tabernacle_n caluin_n except_v that_o christ_n speak_v manner_n after_o a_o humane_a manner_n after_o a_o humane_a manner_n if_o we_o prove_v that_o some_o be_v true_o just_a because_o math._n 1._o v._n 19_o it_o be_v say_v joseph_n her_o husband_n for_o that_o he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n illyricus_n upon_o that_o place_n answer_v here_o he_o be_v call_v just_a after_o the_o common_a manner_n that_o be_v honest_a and_o desirous_a to_o be_v honest_a if_o we_o prove_v that_o god_n give_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n to_o some_o who_o yet_o be_v not_o save_v because_o he_o say_v isaiae_n 5._o v._o 4._o what_o be_v there_o that_o i_o ought_v to_o do_v more_o to_o my_o vineyard_n and_o have_v not_o do_v pareus_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr grat_n &_o lib._n arb_n cap._n 11._o answer_v he_o speak_v not_o as_o god_n but_o after_o a_o humane_a manner_n like_o a_o vineroll_n the_o like_a say_v caluin_n lib._n the_o provident_a pag._n 744._o if_o we_o prove_v that_o christ_n have_v buy_v even_o those_o who_o deny_v he_o because_o it_o be_v plain_o say_v so_o 2._o pet._n 2._o v._n 1._o grossius_n professor_n at_o basel_n in_o apol._n pro_fw-la disput_fw-la inaugurali_fw-la say_v the_o lord_n be_v say_v to_o have_v buy_v such_o both_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o scripture_n which_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n say_v that_o all_o be_v redeem_v saint_n and_o cleanse_v from_o sin_n whosoever_o be_v baptize_v and_o profess_v christ_n albeit_o they_o be_v not_o all_o such_o before_o god_n as_o also_o according_a to_o their_o own_o opinion_n manner_n scripture_n speak_v according_a to_o man_n false_a opinion_n after_o a_o humane_a manner_n and_o boast_n for_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v indeed_o buy_v they_o never_o deny_v he_o zuinglius_fw-la in_o exposit_n fidei_fw-la tom_n 2._o fol._n 558._o write_v this_o worke●_n do_v not_o merit_v but_o when_o the_o scripture_n promise_v reward_n to_o work_n it_o speak_v after_o a_o humane_a manner_n because_o man_n give_v to_o they_o that_o have_v well_o deserve_v and_o the_o gift_n be_v call_v reward_n god_n also_o call_v his_o gift_n reward_v or_o recompense_v the_o like_a have_v bullinger_n in_o rom._n 2._o and_o reineccius_n tom_n 4._o armaturae_fw-la c._n 7._o say_v that_o those_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n tob._n 12._o i_o offer_v thy_o pray_v to_o our_o lord_n be_v speak_v after_o a_o humane_a manner_n for_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o angel_n shall_v offer_v our_o prayer_n to_o the_o lord_n for_o god_n be_v not_o far_o of_o caluin_n 3_o instit_fw-la c._n 18._o §_o 9_o answer_v to_o that_o place_n math._n 19_o v._n 17._o if_o thou_o will_v enter_v to_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n say_v as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o manifest_a that_o christ_n do_v accommodate_v his_o speech_n to_o they_o with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v polanus_fw-la in_o disput_fw-la private_a 38._o say_v this_o place_n in_o which_o christ_n command_v to_o keep_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o supposition_n according_a to_o man_n supposition_n part_n to_o wit_n according_a to_o the_o supposition_n of_o the_o young_a man_n masculus_fw-la in_o joan._n 6._o say_v in_o that_o christ_n call_v faith_n a_o work_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o application_n wherewith_o he_o accomodate_v word_n according_a to_o man_n word_n himself_o to_o the_o word_n of_o this_o people_n and_o luther_n in_o galat._n 2._o tom_n 5._o fol._n 317._o paul_n through_o too_o great_a zeal_n and_o indignation_n indignation_n by_o too_o much_o zeal_n and_o indignation_n of_o spirit_n call_v grace_n a_o law_n whereas_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o great_a and_o infinite_a liberty_n in_o christ._n beza_n in_o cyclope_n vol._n 1._o pag._n 306._o the_o apostle_n hebr._n 7._o v._o 18._o call_v the_o former_a precept_n unprofitable_a but_o he_o speak_v upon_o adversary_n in_o supposition_n of_o adversary_n the_o supposition_n of_o his_o adversary_n so_o deal_v christ_n with_o the_o capharnaite_n christ_n according_a to_o their_o supposition_n say_v his_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o and_o in_o joan._n 6._o v._n 31._o but_o here_o again_o christ_n speak_v upon_o their_o supposition_n with_o who_o he_o discourse_v et_fw-la in_o dial._n count_v heshus_n vol._n 1._o p._n 285._o 306._o and_o count_v westphal_n p._n 241._o say_v the_o apostle_n in_o all_o that_o treatise_n of_o the_o old_a sacrament_n according_a to_o his_o adversary_n supposition_n consider_v the_o ceremony_n a_o part_n from_o christ_n and_o by_o themselves_o the_o like_a have_v tilenus_n in_o syntagmate_n cap._n 57_o but_o gratianus_n antiiesuita_fw-la tom_fw-mi 6._o doctrinae_fw-la jesuit_n part_n 2._o pag._n 3._o speak_v yet_o worse_o say_v according_a to_o this_o impious_a supposition_n the_o supposition_n according_a to_o a_o impious_a supposition_n scripture_n speak_v contemptible_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o call_v circumcision_n some_o where_fw-mi prepuce_fw-la other_o where_o concision_n other_o where_o unprofitable_a and_o manna_n also_o vivificall_a bread_n if_o therefore_o we_o prove_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o law_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o life_n because_o christ_n say_v luc._n 10._o ver_fw-la 28._o do_v this_o and_o thou_o shall_v live_v caluin_n ib._n in_o ver_fw-la 26._o answer_v christ_n speak_v here_o about_o obtain_v life_n as_o he_o be_v ask_v for_o he_o demand_n according_a to_o the_o demand_n tell_v not_o plain_o as_o he_o do_v otherewhere_o how_o man_n may_v come_v to_o life_n christ_n in_o this_o answer_n do_v accommodate_v himself_o to_o the_o lawyer_n and_o respect_v the_o demand_n see_v also_o whitak_n l._n 8._o cont_n dur._n sect_n 38._o if_o we_o prove_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o noble_a food_n than_o manna_n because_o christ_n say_v joan._n 6._o v._n 27._o work_v not_o the_o meat_n that_o perish_v but_o that_o endure_v unto_o life_n everlasting_a caluin_n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 14._o §_o 25._o answer_v christ_n accommodate_v opinion_n according_a to_o the_o gross_a opinion_n his_o speech_n to_o the_o gross_a opinion_n of_o the_o capharnaite_n the_o same_o he_o have_v in_o joan._n 6._o versus_fw-la 50._o if_o we_o prove_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v of_o more_o virtue_n than_o manna_n be_v because_o christ_n say_v joan._n 6._o v._n 58._o your_o father_n do_v eat_v manna_n and_o die_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o caluin_n 2._o instit_fw-la c._n 10._o §_o 6._o answer_v the_o lord_n speak_v capacity_n according_a to_o carnal_a man_n capacity_n to_o hair_n who_o only_o seek_v to_o be_v fill_v with_o meat_n of_o the_o belly_n and_o care_v not_o for_o the_o true_a food_n of_o the_o soul_n do_v somewhat_o accommodate_v his_o speech_n to_o their_o capacity_n but_o especial_o he_o make_v the_o comparison_n of_o manna_n and_o of_o his_o body_n according_a to_o their_o meaning_n and_o in_o 1._o cor._n 10._o v._n 3._o christ_n accommodateh_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o hearer_n we_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n speak_v thing_n not_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n not_o there_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n but_o according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o hearer_n if_o we_o prove_v that_o christ_n add_v somewhat_o to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n because_o he_o say_v math._n 5._o v._n 22._o you_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o be_v say_v to_o they_o of_o old_a thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v etc._n etc._n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o who_o soever_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o judgement_n caluin_n ib._n answer_v christ_n indeed_o people_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o valgar_a sort_n to_o their_o gross_a error_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o common_a people_n bring_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n but_o he_o accommodate_v himself_o to_o the_o common_a capacite_n of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n and_o in_o rom._n 2._o v._n 26._o the_o apostle_n do_v accommodate_v his_o speech_n according_a to_o their_o
withal_o which_o we_o must_v universal_o and_o always_o observe_v and_o hold_v of_o work_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v as_o a_o way_n and_o certain_a mark_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o glory_n but_o not_o by_o cause_v or_o work_v it_o caluin_n upon_o those_o word_n 2._o cor._n 7._o v._n 10._o for_o the_o sorrow_n that_o be_v according_a to_o god_n work_v penance_n unto_o salvation_n that_o be_v stable_n write_v thus_o paul_n enquire_v not_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n but_o only_o commend_v penance_n of_o the_o fruit_n which_o it_o way_n worke._n 1._o be_v as_o a_o way_n bring_v forth_o do_v say_v that_o it_o be_v like_o a_o way_n whereby_o we_o come_v to_o salvation_n in_o this_o sort_n consequence_n be_v rather_o signify_v then_o any_o cause_n and_o to_o the_o same_o place_n pareus_n libr._n 4._o de_fw-la justificat_fw-la cap._n 7._o answer_v no_o efficient_a cause_n but_o a_o mean_a or_o condition_n which_o help_v either_o by_o itself_o or_o by_o accident_n be_v signify_v and_o scarpius_n de_fw-fr justification_n controver_n 12._o pennance_n be_v say_v to_o work_v salvation_n not_o by_o make_v it_o by_o it_o virtue_n but_o by_o lead_v as_o by_o a_o way_n to_o salvation_n the_o same_o caluin_n in_o 1._o corinth_n 7._o vers_fw-la 19_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o and_o prepuce_fw-la be_v nothing_o but_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n here_o say_v he_o paul_n dispute_v not_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o justice_n nor_o how_o we_o obtain_v it_o but_o only_o to_o what_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o bend_v endeavour_n and_o upon_o that_o feel_v wash_n 1._o feel_v actorum_fw-la 22._o vers_fw-la 16._o be_v baptize_v and_o wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n ablution_n he_o say_v he_o signify_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o be_v refer_v to_o paul_n feeling_n who_o have_v receive_v the_o symbol_n know_v better_a that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o 3._o institution_n cap._n 4._o §_o 36._o he_o say_v where_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v purge_v by_o mercy_n and_o bountifulness_n proverb_n 16._o be_v not_o mean_v that_o by_o they_o it_o be_v recompense_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n but_o be_v show_v that_o they_o shall_v find_v god_n merciful_a to_o they_o who_o forsake_v vice_n be_v turn_v to_o piety_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v god_n wrath_n be_v appease_v when_o we_o leave_v our_o wickedness_n and_o ibidem_fw-la cap._n 14._o §_o ultim_fw-la have_v object_v to_o himself_o that_o the_o scripture_n declare_v that_o good_a work_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o god_n do_v favour_v they_o he_o answer_v that_o which_o in_o order_n go_v first_o he_o call_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o this_o manner_n he_o derive_v step_n cause_n 1._o a_o step_n sometime_o eternal_a life_n from_o good_a work_n not_o that_o it_o be_v give_v for_o they_o but_o because_o who_o god_n have_v choose_v he_o justifi_v that_o afterward_o he_o may_v glorify_v the_o former_a grace_n which_o be_v a_o step_n to_o the_o late_a he_o after_o a_o sort_n make_v a_o cause_n final_o by_o these_o kind_n of_o speech_n order_n be_v rather_o signify_v than_o cause_n pareus_n l._n 3._o the_o justif_a c._n 12._o say_v that_o by_o those_o word_n 2._o timoth._n 4._o i_o have_v fight_v a_o good_a fight_n the_o order_n and_o way_n to_o the_o crown_n be_v note_v not_o the_o cause_n so_o that_o what_o the_o scripture_n make_v the_o cause_n according_a to_o these_o man_n be_v only_o a_o mean_a a_o way_n step_n or_o order_n in_o like_a manner_n what_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o one_o cause_n they_o give_v to_o a_o other_o as_o what_o it_o atttibute_v to_o good_a work_n they_o give_v to_o faith_n only_o what_o it_o ascribe_v to_o faith_n or_o sacrament_n they_o appropriate_a to_o god_n alone_o zuinglius_fw-la l._n de_fw-fr provident_a cap._n 6._o when_o paul_n write_v to_o spirit_n hear_v 1._o spirit_n the_o roman_n that_o faith_n come_v of_o hear_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o near_a cause_n and_o more_o know_v to_o we_o which_o come_v only_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o from_o outward_a preach_n and_o in_o math._n 4._o oftentimes_o that_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o late_a which_o belong_v to_o the_o former_a as_o to_o work_n which_o rather_o belong_v to_o faith_n and_o again_o to_o faith_n which_o most_o proper_o faith_n work_n 1._o faith_n and_o true_o belong_v to_o god_n election_n sadeel_v de_fw-fr ver_fw-la peccat_fw-la remiss_a p._n 139._o answer_v to_o those_o word_n proverb_n 16._o iniquity_n be_v purge_v by_o bounty_n and_o mercy_n say_v that_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o effect_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o cause_n after_o the_o usual_a manner_n say_v he_o of_o scripture_n that_o be_v attribute_v to_o their_o virtue_n which_o proper_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n alone_o illyricus_n in_o cleave_v part_n 2._o tract_n 6._o i'faith_o word_n and_o sacrament_n god_n faith_n etc._n etc._n 1._o god_n be_v say_v to_o save_v we_o whereas_o god_n alone_o do_v those_o thing_n and_o ibid._n thy_o faith_n have_v save_v thou_o whereas_o only_o god_n mercy_n and_o omni_n potency_n apprehend_v by_o faith_n do_v that_o and_o he_o add_v cause_n scripture_n oftentimes_o attribute_v thing_n not_o to_o their_o true_a cause_n oftentimes_o effect_n be_v attribute_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o not_o true_a or_o not_o principal_a cause_n hereupon_o it_o come_v that_o there_o be_v often_o mention_v of_o alleosis_n with_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o of_o metalepsis_n with_o other_o by_o which_o figure_n what_o the_o scripture_n give_v to_o one_o thing_n they_o transfer_v to_o a_o other_o which_o alleosis_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o exegesi_fw-la to_o 2._o f._n 350._o call_v interchangable_a speech_n but_o luther_n in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o histor_n f._n 57_o term_v it_o the_o devil_n mask_n wherefore_o thus_o i_o argue_v in_o form_n who_o gaynesay_v the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o first_o book_n and_o beside_o in_o many_o and_o weighty_a matter_n word_n which_o signify_v a_o cause_n do_v expound_v of_o a_o way_n mean_v or_o order_n and_o what_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o one_o cause_n do_v transfer_v to_o a_o other_o they_o contradict_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n protestant_n do_v so_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n chapter_n xviii_o that_o word_n of_o scripture_n which_o say_v a_o thing_n be_v protestant_n expound_v by_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o 18._o argument_n shall_v be_v because_o what_o the_o scripture_n say_v be_v protestant_n expound_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v pareus_n l._n 2._o the_o justif_a c._n 7._o those_o word_n 1._o joan._n 2._o v._n 5._o but_o he_o that_o keep_v his_o word_n in_o he_o the_o charity_n of_o god_n be_v be_v is._n 1._o ought_v to_o be_v perfect_v expound_v thus_o the_o sentence_n of_o s._n john_n as_o other_o such_o like_a be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o right_a or_o duty_n not_o of_o fact_n what_o kind_n of_o charity_n ought_v to_o be_v not_o what_o kind_n be_v in_o us._n and_o ibid._n those_o word_n coloss_n 3._o v._n 14._o have_v charity_n which_o be_v the_o bind_v of_o perfection_n he_o gloss_v thus_o charity_n be_v call_v the_o bind_v of_o perfection_n not_o which_o we_o have_v but_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v and_o which_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o everlasting_a life_n et_fw-fr l._n 4_o c._n 11._o those_o word_n deuter._n 30._o v._o 6._o our_o lord_n god_n shall_v circumcise_v thy_o heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o thy_o seed_n that_o thou_o may_v love_v thy_o lord_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n he_o interprete_v in_o this_o sort_n the_o promise_n to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n either_o speak_v of_o duty_n how_o we_o ought_v to_o love_n god_n to_o wit_n sincere_o and_o perfect_o or_o it_o speak_v of_o sincerity_n and_o the_o same_o pareus_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr grat._n &_o lib._n arbit_n c._n 6._o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 3._o he_o thus_o expound_v the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o strength_n of_o truth_n of_o duty_n because_o she_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v so_o albeit_o she_o be_v not_o so_o always_o in_o act_n the_o same_o he_o have_v in_o gal._n 2._o lect_n 18._o moulins_n in_o his_o bucler_n pag._n 50._o and_o other_o tilenus_n in_o syntagmate_n cap._n 46._o write_v that_o in_o those_o place_n joan._n 14._o v._n 21._o rom._n 13._o 8._o and_o gal._n 5._o 14._o where_o the_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o those_o who_o love_n god_n do_v keep_v his_o commandment_n it_o mean_v not_o of_o man_n power_n to_o perform_v the_o law_n but_o of_o our_o duty_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n mean_v not_o that_o who_o love_n god_n keep_v
justification_n write_v thus_o sanctification_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o covenant_n heb._n 10._o v._o 29._o be_v not_o the_o inward_a cleanse_n of_o the_o heart_n from_o sin_n to_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n act._n 19_o v._n 2._o with_o they_o be_v not_o to_o receive_v grace_n but_o some_o special_a gift_n caluin_n ibid._n here_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n but_o of_o special_a gift_n in_o like_a sort_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ib._n nether_a have_v we_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o mean_v the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o thus_o caluin_n ib._n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o jew_n have_v not_o hear_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n et_fw-la beza_n ibid._n it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o they_o know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v sanctify_v hebr._n 10._o v._o 29._o be_v not_o to_o be_v true_o sanctify_v for_o thus_o contraremonstrante_v in_o collat._n hagae_n p._n 391._o nether_a yet_o can_v it_o be_v conclude_v thereof_o that_o they_o be_v true_o faithful_a and_o indeed_o sanctify_v to_o fall_v from_o grace_n gal._n 5._o ver_fw-la 5._o with_o they_o be_v not_o to_o fall_v from_o grace_n but_o to_o fall_v from_o the_o hope_n of_o obtain_v it_o contrare_fw-la monstrantes_fw-la loc_fw-la cit_fw-la p._n 388._o these_o be_v say_v to_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o justification_n not_o that_o ever_o they_o be_v partaker_n thereof_o but_o because_o they_o be_v exclude_v from_o all_o hope_n of_o obtain_v it_o so_o long_o as_o they_o will_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n touch_v baptism_n to_o be_v baptize_v act._n 19_o v._n 3._o in_o who_o baptism_n touch_v baptism_n then_o be_v you_o baptize_v with_o they_o be_v not_o to_o have_v receive_v baptism_n but_o other_o gift_n beza_n ib._n we_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o here_o be_v not_o treat_v of_o baptism_n but_o of_o gift_n wherewith_o god_n be_v wont_a special_o to_o adorn_v those_o who_o he_o make_v ruler_n of_o church_n gual●erus_n ib._n hom_n 125._o these_o word_n must_v not_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n but_o of_o the_o baptism_n of_o fire_n likewise_o baptism_n 1._o pet._n 3._o with_o they_o signify_v not_o baptism_n but_o christ_n zuinglius_fw-la resp_n ad_fw-la huber_n tom_fw-mi 2._o it_o be_v certain_o evident_a that_o peter_n in_o that_o place_n by_o baptism_n understand_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o christ._n water_n also_o joan._n 3._o v._n 5._o unless_o one_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n signify_v not_o water_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n caluin_n ibid._n i_o can_v no_o way_n be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o baptism_n and_o in_o refutat_fw-la serueti_n this_o pertain_v nothing_o to_o baptism_n but_o the_o name_n of_o water_n be_v metaphorical_o attribute_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n zuinglius_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n by_o water_n here_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o element_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n grace_n of_o god_n heavenly_a water_n that_o be_v the_o illustration_n of_o the_o no●●e_a ghost_n and_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n other_o protestant_n common_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n eucharist_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n with_o they_o be_v not_o be_v but_o signify_v nor_o body_n give_v for_o we_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o only_a figure_n of_o they_o as_o appeareth_z by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 11._o art_n 1._o to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o often_o repeat_v joan._n 6._o be_v not_o to_o eat_v or_o drink_v but_o only_o to_o believe_v p._n martyr_n cont_n gardiner_n part_n 1._o col_fw-fr col_fw-fr 866._o we_o still_o say_v that_o to_o eat_v to_o wit_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o apprehend_v it_o by_o faith_n as_o give_v for_o we_o as_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n which_o also_o he_o have_v col_fw-fr 863._o and_o luther_n postil_n in_o dom._n post_fw-la nativit_fw-la to_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o flesh_n and_o believe_v to_o eat_v 1._o not_o to_o eat_v but_o to_o believe_v blood_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n true_o take_v these_o for_o our_o sake_n and_o repay_v they_o again_o at_o death_n the_o like_a have_v zuinglius_fw-la in_o joan._n 6._o and_o in_o histor_n passionis_fw-la and_o l._n de_fw-fr relig._n c._n de_fw-fr euchar._n bullinger_n dec._n 5._o serm_n 9_o vrsinus_n in_o catechism_n q._n 76._o flesh_n in_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n joan._n 6._o my_o divinity_n flesh._n 1._o not_o flesh_n but_o divinity_n flesh_n be_v true_o meat_n with_o they_o be_v not_o flesh_n but_o the_o godhead_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o exegesi_fw-la to_o 2._o fol._n 333._o he_o say_v his_o flesh_n be_v true_o meat_n mean_v sure_o not_o his_o flesh_n but_o his_o better_a nature_n which_o have_v take_v flesh_n the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o those_o word_n 1._o cor._n 10._o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n with_o these_o man_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n christ_n 1._o christian_n christ_n but_o christian_n zuinglius_fw-la lib._n cit_fw-la thou_o might_n have_v see_v at_o the_o first_o how_o that_o communion_n and_o body_n be_v not_o take_v man_n body_n of_o christ_n 1._o man_n for_o distribution_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o for_o man_n themselves_o final_o luther_n be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o set_v down_o a_o canon_n contrary_n luther_n canon_n of_o expound_v word_n by_o contrary_n of_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o contrary_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o ps_n 5._o to_o 3._o fol._n 171._o let_v this_o be_v a_o canon_n for_o thou_o where_o the_o scripture_n command_v a_o good_a work_n to_o be_v do_v do_v thou_o so_o understand_v it_o that_o it_o forbid_v thou_o do_v good_a work_n see_v thou_o can_v not_o but_o that_o thou_o may_v sanctify_v the_o lord_n be_v dead_a and_o bury_v and_o suffer_v god_n to_o work_v in_o thou_o which_o canon_n protestant_n do_v well_o follow_v as_o appeareth_z by_o what_o have_v be_v relate_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o before_o in_o the_o sixth_o and_o seven_o chapter_n where_o we_o show_v that_o in_o the_o weightieste_a matter_n they_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n ironical_o and_o according_a to_o other_o man_n mind_n these_o and_o innumerable_a the_o like_a doe_n protestant_n of_o which_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v not_o only_o a_o chapter_n but_o a_o book_n full_a but_o out_o of_o these_o which_o we_o have_v rehearse_v it_o clear_o appear_v first_o how_o great_a heretical_a liberty_n as_o tertullian_n speak_v be_v which_o turn_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n this_o way_n and_o that_o way_n in_o to_o this_o form_n and_o that_o and_o toss_v they_o up_o and_o down_o like_o tennis_n ball_n second_o how_o easy_a it_o may_v be_v for_o every_o idiot_n with_o this_o liberty_n for_o to_o defend_v what_o heresy_n soever_o though_o never_o so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n for_o who_o can_v expound_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n by_o diverse_a by_o disparate_a and_o contrary_a thing_n three_o how_o impossible_a it_o be_v if_o this_o liberty_n be_v admit_v to_o refute_v by_o scripture_n any_o heresy_n at_o all_o or_o to_o prove_v any_o thing_n by_o any_o word_n whatsoever_o either_o of_o god_n or_o man_n four_o how_o that_o protestant_n by_o this_o kind_n of_o deal_v do_v more_o dishonour_n god_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n then_o if_o they_o shall_v quite_o reject_v it_o for_o if_o they_o shall_v reject_v the_o scripture_n they_o shall_v only_o reject_v god_n word_n and_o truth_n but_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o deal_v they_o do_v not_o only_o reject_v god_n truth_n and_o meaning_n but_o also_o in_o steed_n thereof_o foist_v in_o the_o contrary_a untrueth_n and_o so_o as_o s._n hierome_n speak_v ●_o in_o galat._n ●_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o make_v the_o word_n of_o the_o devil_n five_o it_o appear_v that_o these_o exposition_n of_o protestant_n be_v like_a to_o that_o which_o luther_n mer_o devise_v for_o to_o show_v the_o sacramentary_n how_o they_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n in_o defence_n verb._n cenae_fw-la to_o 7._o fol._n 384._o where_o he_o exposition_n a_o fit_a example_n of_o protest_v exposition_n write_v thus_o sure_o they_o do_v a_o great_a and_o weighty_a matter_n but_o no_o otherwise_o then_o if_o i_o shall_v deny_v that_o god_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n &_o when_o one_o shall_v object_v that_o of_o moses_n in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n i_o shall_v expound_v moses_n word_n in_o this_o sort_n god_n that_o be_v a_o cuccou_n make_v that_o be_v devour_v heaven_n and_o earth_n
that_o be_v a_o hedge_n sparrow_n all_o and_o whole_a it_o not_o this_o a_o trick_n of_o art_n yes_o sure_o not_o unknown_a nor_o unsemely_a to_o stage_n player_n thus_o luther_n who_o as_o be_v best_o practise_v in_o this_o art_n can_v best_o of_o all_o other_o describe_v it_o final_o it_o appear_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o only_o forge_v a_o new_a faith_n but_o also_o a_o new_a tongue_n a_o new_a grammar_n a_o new_a frame_n of_o speech_n for_o concern_v proposition_n they_o bid_v we_o understand_v a_o affirmation_n by_o a_o negation_n and_o a_o negation_n by_o a_o affirmation_n and_o word_n they_o bid_v we_o expound_v by_o diverse_a by_o disparate_a and_o contrary_n to_o these_o which_o they_o signify_v with_o other_o man_n and_o this_o new_a grammar_n of_o they_o luther_n acknowledge_v in_o these_o word_n gal._n 3._o tom_n 5._o fol._n 345._o those_o word_n to_o do_v to_o work_v be_v to_o be_v take_v language_n protestant_n new_a grammar_n or_o language_n three_o manner_n of_o way_n substantial_o or_o natural_o moral_o and_o theological_o insubstance_n nature_n and_o moral_a matter_n these_o word_n be_v take_v in_o their_o usual_a and_o natural_a signification_n but_o in_o divinity_n they_o be_v make_v plain_o new_a word_n and_o get_v a_o new_a signification_n wherefore_o when_o thou_o read_v in_o scripture_n of_o father_n of_o prophet_n of_o king_n that_o they_o wrought_v justice_n etc._n etc._n remember_v that_o such_o and_o the_o like_a say_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o new_a and_o theological_a grammar_n of_o protestant_n wherefore_o i_o admonish_v you_o again_o that_o the_o sentence_n which_o the_o adversary_n object_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o work_n and_o reward_n be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v theological_o by_o the_o definition_n as_o if_o they_o object_v that_o say_n of_o daniel_n 4._o redeem_v thy_o sin_n by_o alm_n straight_o we_o must_v run_v to_o the_o theological_a grammar_n and_o not_o to_o the_o moral_a the_o like_a he_o have_v in_o cap._n 4._o genes_n fol._n 60._o nor_o much_o otherwise_o write_v kemnice_n libr._n the_o origin_n jesuit_n pag._n 47._o when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v that_o in_o this_o article_n of_o justification_n not_o only_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o the_o meaning_n but_o also_o the_o very_a name_n shall_v be_v by_o a_o peculiar_a signification_n distinct_a from_o the_o word_n of_o philosopher_n schlusselburg_n also_o praefat._n libr._n theolog._n caluin_n distinguish_v between_o the_o grammar_n of_o nation_n and_o of_o divines_n and_o say_v that_o that_o take_v the_o word_n of_o justice_n active_o but_o this_o take_v it_o passive_o the_o like_a have_v gesnerus_fw-la loc_fw-la 2._o the_o justif_a pag._n 47._o but_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o think_v of_o these_o inventor_n of_o monger_n luther_n censure_n of_o these_o new_a word_n monger_n a_o new_a grammar_n themselves_o do_v sometime_o tell_v us._n for_o thus_o write_v luther_n lib._n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitr_n tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 435._o who_o will_v not_o mock_v or_o rather_o hate_v this_o unsemely_a changer_n of_o word_n who_o against_o all_o use_n endeavour_v to_o bring_v in_o such_o kind_n of_o speech_n as_o to_o call_v a_o beggar_n a_o rich_a man_n by_o this_o abuse_n of_o speech_n any_o man_n may_v brag_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o divine_n but_o of_o coosener_n and_o stageplayer_n and_o caluin_n libr._n contr_n libertin_n cap._n 3._o the_o libertine_n at_o libertine_n libertine_n the_o first_o bold_o reject_v the_o scripture_n but_o when_o they_o see_v that_o thereby_o they_o be_v abhor_v of_o all_o man_n they_o mean_v to_o deal_v more_o close_o and_o more_o coverte_o that_o make_v show_v not_o to_o cast_v away_o scripture_n they_o may_v turn_v it_o into_o allegory_n and_o wrest_v it_o into_o diverse_a and_o strange_a sense_n change_v a_o horse_n into_o a_o man_n and_o as_o the_o common_a speech_n be_v feign_v the_o horn_n of_o a_o lantern_n to_o be_v a_o cloud_n and_o capit_fw-la 7._o like_a as_o egyptian_n and_o other_o vagabond_n such_o as_o those_o who_o go_v out_o of_o bohemia_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o the_o whole_a world_n use_v a_o certain_a peculiar_a speech_n which_o none_o understand_v but_o those_o of_o their_o own_o crew_n and_o brotherhood_n so_o etc._n etc._n i_o deny_v not_o but_o they_o use_v the_o common_a word_n but_o so_o they_o alter_v their_o signification_n as_o no_o man_n can_v understand_v what_o the_o matter_n be_v which_o be_v propose_v nor_o what_o they_o will_v affirm_v or_o deny_v beza_n also_o l._n the_o puniend_n haer._n vol._n 1._o theol._n satan_n when_o he_o can_v not_o quite_o cast_v the_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o church_n yet_o by_o vain_a allegory_n make_v it_o altogether_o unprofitable_a which_o course_n now_o the_o libertine_n and_o anabaptiste_n do_v take_v bullinger_n contion_n familiste_n anabaptiste_n arian_n seruetian_o familiste_n 25._o in_o apocal._n thus_o write_v of_o the_o arian_n and_o seruetian_o they_o turn_v and_o wind_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o their_o gigantical_a boldness_n as_o they_o listen_v whitaker_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr script_n c._n ult._n sect_n 4._o the_o familist_n do_v leave_v almost_o no_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n untouched_a while_o with_o their_o allegory_n they_o turn_v and_o corrupt_v all_o thing_n and_o reinolds_n in_o his_o conference_n cap._n 2._o sect_n 2._o the_o familist_n for_o to_o save_v their_o frenzy_n from_o the_o scripture_n reject_v the_o literal_a sense_n which_o be_v the_o very_a edge_n thereof_o and_o put_v that_o up_o into_o the_o scabarde_n of_o their_o fanatical_a dream_n and_o allegory_n the_o like_a have_v perkins_n in_o conflictu_fw-la christi_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o this_o they_o note_v in_o the_o libertine_n familist_n anabaptist_n and_o other_o whereof_o themselves_o be_v no_o less_o guilty_a than_o those_o be_v as_o appeareth_z by_o what_o have_v be_v already_o relate_v but_o as_o luther_n himself_o say_v genes_n 6._o tom_n 6._o fol._n 84._o who_o will_v suffer_v this_o liberty_n in_o deprave_v the_o true_a sense_n in_o the_o fable_n of_o terence_n or_o virgil_n ecloge_n and_o shall_v we_o suffer_v it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o defension_n verb._n cenae_n tom_n 7._o fol._n 397._o sure_o i_o can_v see_v that_o they_o can_v be_v excuse_v by_o any_o plausible_a pretext_n as_o if_o upon_o a_o good_a meaning_n they_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o some_o curiofitie_n or_o spiritual_a blindness_n as_o it_o happen_v to_o most_o heretic_n but_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o mock_v the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o obstinacy_n and_o malice_n for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o can_v be_v that_o these_o silly_a trifle_n and_o toy_n shall_v in_o earnest_n move_v a_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n whether_o he_o be_v a_o turk_n or_o jew_n much_o less_o a_o christian_n thus_o the_o protestant_n own_o prophet_n and_o father_n speak_v of_o protestant_n wherefore_o thus_o i_o argue_v in_o the_o 20._o place_n who_o not_o only_o gaynesay_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n so_o direct_o and_o so_o often_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o first_o book_n but_o also_o in_o so_o many_a and_o so_o great_a matter_n expound_v the_o word_n thereof_o by_o diverse_a by_o disparate_v and_o by_o contrary_n so_o that_o they_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a grammar_n a_o new_a language_n and_o signification_n of_o word_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o they_o manifest_o contradict_v nay_o mock_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o protestant_n do_v so_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n chapter_n xxi_o that_o protestant_n be_v compel_v to_o devise_v improprietie_n of_o word_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o figure_n the_o 21._o argument_n wherewith_o we_o will_v prove_v that_o protestant_n do_v contradict_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v because_o when_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o word_n be_v against_o they_o they_o devise_v impropriety_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o figure_n caluin_n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 8._o §_o 2._o authority_n be_v not_o proper_o give_v to_o proper_o not_o proper_o man_n beza_n in_o confess_v c._n 5._o sect_n 27._o nether_a pastor_n nor_o doctor_n can_v proper_o bind_v or_o loose_v any_o man_n zanchius_n de_fw-fr eccles_n c._n 9_o power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n be_v not_o proper_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n or_o to_o other_o for_o they_o do_v not_o proper_o forgive_v sin_n vorstius_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la homium_fw-la p._n 31._o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o faith_n itself_o do_v proper_o justify_v us._n perkins_n in_o cathol_n reform_v cont._n 5._o c._n 3._o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v call_v a_o reward_n not_o proper_o but_o by_o a_o figure_n et_fw-fr cont._n 10._o c._n 4._o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v proper_o but_o by_o a_o figure_n pareus_n l._n 5._o the_o justif_a
be_v in_o itself_o clear_a so_o pareus_n in_o gal._n 2._o lect_n 25._o the_o gospel_n teach_v good_a work_n not_o of_o itself_o but_o borrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n from_o the_o law_n so_o the_o some_o pareus_n colleg._n theol._n 9_o disput_fw-la 39_o the_o thessalonian_o take_v not_o upon_o they_o to_o judge_v or_o to_o debate_v whether_o god_n truth_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v but_o only_o examine_v paul_n doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o scripture_n so_o caluin_n act_n 17._o vers_fw-la 13._o as_o if_o paul_n doctrine_n and_o god_n truth_n be_v not_o all_o one_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o most_o large_a sense_n be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n large_o for_o the_o doctrine_n both_o of_o grace_n and_o faith_n and_o of_o repentance_n and_o new_a obedience_n but_o straite_o and_o proper_o for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n by_o faith_n so_o pareus_n l._n 4._o the_o justif_a c._n 3._o final_o the_o scripture_n speak_v as_o the_o law_n not_o as_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o distinction_n they_o delude_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o luther_n de_fw-fr seru_fw-fr arbit_fw-la to_o 2._o f._n 449._o caluin_n in_o math._n 19_o vers_fw-la 17._o pareus_n l._n 4._o the_o justif_a cap._n 2._o schlusselb_n to_o 8._o catal._n p._n 441._o &_o to_o 2._o p._n 270._o of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n they_o have_v invent_v these_o apostle_n of_o the_o apostle_n new_a distinction_n s._n peter_n be_v first_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o order_n not_o in_o jurisdiction_n the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o those_o that_o find_v the_o church_n not_o as_o those_o on_o which_o it_o be_v found_v or_o as_o junius_n spake_v cont._n 3._o l._n 1._o c._n 10._o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o peter_n as_o upon_o a_o pillar_n not_o as_o on_o a_o foundation_n of_o pastor_n they_o distinguish_v that_o authority_n be_v in_o the_o pastor_n of_o pastor_n word_n which_o they_o preach_v not_o in_o themselves_o that_o they_o govern_v the_o visible_a church_n but_o not_o the_o catholic_a that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n they_o be_v make_v without_o mission_n but_o not_o otherwise_o see_v l._n 1._o c._n 7._o of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v bring_v in_o these_o new_a distinction_n church_n of_o the_o church_n that_o for_o profession_n of_o faith_n there_o be_v one_o church_n visible_a a_o other_o invisible_a that_o she_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_a point_n but_o not_o in_o other_o that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v when_o she_o preach_v scripture_n but_o not_o otherwise_o that_o she_o be_v the_o pillar_n to_o which_o truth_n be_v fasten_v not_o on_o which_o it_o rely_v so_o say_v rivet_v tractat._n 1._o sec_fw-la 39_o or_o as_o andrews_n write_v in_o resp_n ad_fw-la apol._n bellar._n c._n 14._o she_o be_v so_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n as_o that_o she_o rely_v upon_o truth_n not_o truth_n upon_o she_o that_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n not_o to_o know_v they_o so_o whitaker_n lib._n 3._o the_o script_n 396._o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o stay_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n not_o the_o foundation_n of_o truth_n heilbruner_n in_o colloq_fw-la ratisb_n sess_v 7._o of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o distinguish_v in_o this_o sort_n they_o justify_v as_o sign_n or_o seal_n not_o as_o cause_n they_o be_v receive_v sacrament_n of_o sacrament_n whole_a and_o entire_a of_o the_o good_a but_o not_o of_o the_o bad_a that_o baptism_n be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n passive_o not_o active_o so_o daneus_n contr._n 2._o c._n 12._o that_o baptism_n be_v but_o one_o take_v whole_o but_o be_v twoe_o take_v by_o part_n so_o beza_n part_n resp_n ad_fw-la acta_fw-la p._n 44._o that_o the_o church_n be_v cleanse_v significative_o by_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n but_o real_o by_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o beza_n ib._n p._n 115._o or_o as_o polanus_fw-la say_v in_o disp_n priu_fw-la p._n 37._o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v blot_v out_o by_o baptism_n not_o proper_o but_o in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n the_o same_o beza_n in_o hutter_n in_o analysi_fw-la p._n 54._o say_v i_o never_o simple_o say_v that_o baptism_n be_v the_o obsignation_n of_o regeneration_n in_o child_n but_o of_o adoption_n perkins_n in_o galat._n 3_o by_o baptism_n actual_a guilt_n be_v take_v away_o but_o not_o potential_a pareus_n in_o gal._n 2._o lect_n 23._o absolute_o we_o be_v all_o bear_a sinner_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o covenant_n we_o be_v bear_v christian_n or_o god_n confederate_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o have_v these_o distinction_n that_o it_o eucharist_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o symbolical_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o his_o true_a body_n that_o christ_n his_o flesh_n kill_v do_v profit_v we_o but_o not_o eat_v that_o it_o be_v exhibit_v in_o the_o supper_n according_a to_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o not_o according_a to_o the_o substance_n that_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v 1._o cor._n 11._o he_o eat_v judgement_n to_o himself_o he_o mean_v not_o of_o damnation_n but_o of_o correction_n so_o wolfius_n in_o schusselb_n l._n 1._o theol._n art_n 25._o in_o like_a sort_n they_o say_v that_o priest_n forgive_v sin_n indirect_o not_o direct_o direct_o as_o it_o be_v a_o offence_n of_o the_o church_n indirect_o as_o it_o a_o offence_n of_o god_n so_o spalata_n l._n 5._o de_fw-fr repub._n c._n 12._o of_o faith_n they_o make_v these_o distinction_n that_o one_o be_v catholic_a faith_n of_o faith_n or_o universal_a or_o historical_a a_o other_o special_a again_o that_o one_o be_v abstract_a naked_a simple_a a_o other_o concrete_a compound_v incarnate_a so_o luther_n in_o gal._n 3._o to_o 5._o that_o there_o be_v one_o habitual_a and_o actual_a of_o man_n a_o other_o potential_a and_o inclinative_a of_o infant_n so_o pareus_n l._n 3._o the_o justif_a c._n 14._o or_o as_o polanus_fw-la say_v part_n 2._o thes_n p._n 651._o infant_n have_v not_o altogether_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o man_n have_v yet_o they_o have_v some_o thing_n proportionable_a piscator_fw-la in_o thesibus_fw-la l._n 2._o pag._n 252._o adam_n before_o his_o fall_n have_v not_o justify_v faith_n or_o as_o pareus_n write_v l._n 1_o de_fw-fr amiss_o grat._n c._n 7._o adam_n lose_v faith_n of_o the_o commandment_n but_o not_o faith_n of_o the_o promise_n bullinger_n dec_fw-la 5._o serm_n 7._o infant_n be_v faithful_a by_o the_o imputation_n of_o god_n again_o they_o be_v baptize_v in_o their_o own_o faith_n to_o wit_n which_o god_n impute_v to_o they_o zanchius_n in_o supplicat_fw-la to_o 7._o many_o reprobate_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o certain_a faith_n much_o like_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o elect_a but_o not_o with_o the_o same_o perkins_n in_o cathol_n 4._o c._n 5._o there_o be_v one_o general_a and_o catholic_a faith_n wherewith_o a_o man_n beleive_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v true_a and_o a_o other_o justify_v or_o particular_a faith_n thus_o they_o distinguish_v of_o faith_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n they_o distinguish_v of_o the_o justification_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o justifi_v relative_o or_o correlative_o not_o absolute_o and_o as_o a_o instrument_n not_o as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n bucanus_n in_o institit_fw-la loc_fw-la 3._o faith_n be_v say_v to_o be_v impute_v to_o justice_n not_o proper_o but_o relative_o polan_n part_n 2._o thes_n pag._n 197._o we_o be_v iustefied_a by_o faith_n not_o proper_o but_o relative_o reineccius_n tom_n 4._o armat_fw-la cap._n 21._o faith_n justifi_v as_o well_o absolute_o as_o consider_v relative_o pareus_n in_o galat._n 3._o lection_n 32._o faith_n be_v impute_v to_o justice_n relative_o again_o faith_n justifi_v organical_o and_o in_o colleg._n theol._n 2._o disp_n 10._o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n but_o not_o former_o nor_o meritorious_o but_o organical_o touch_v the_o loss_n of_o faith_n they_o thus_o distinguish_v zanchius_n in_o supplication_n citat_fw-la the_o elect_v loose_a faith_n in_o part_n but_o not_o whole_o beza_n in_o prefat_n 2._o part_n respon_n ad_fw-la acta_fw-la faith_n sometime_o sleep_v sometime_o seem_v to_o be_v quite_o lose_v but_o yet_o be_v not_o lose_v again_o there_o be_v a_o lethargy_n of_o faith_n but_o no_o loss_n the_o feel_n or_o use_n of_o faith_n be_v lose_v for_o a_o time_n but_o not_o faith_n itself_o some_o reprobate_n do_v believe_v with_o a_o general_a and_o historical_a faith_n common_a to_o the_o devil_n themselves_o tilenus_n in_o syntagm_n capit_fw-la 43._o the_o faithful_a become_v sometime_o outlier_n but_o not_o runaway_n or_o forsaker_n in_o like_a sort_n they_o say_v that_o faith_n without_o work_n at_o the_o time_n of_o justification_n be_v not_o dead_a but_o at_o other_o time_n if_o it_o be_v without_o work_n it_o be_v dead_a likewise_o reineccius_n
out_o of_o the_o father_n writing_n against_o we_o i_o plain_o say_v that_o i_o will_v not_o bind_v myself_o to_o their_o authority_n in_o like_a sort_n they_o make_v little_a reckon_n of_o the_o church_n &_o nothing_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n avail_v nothing_o counsel_n for_o thus_o write_v whitaker_n ad_fw-la rat._n 3._o camp_n can_v the_o church_n afford_v we_o no_o confirmation_n of_o doctrine_n no_o argument_n of_o faith_n none_o et_fw-la cont_n 1._o q._n 5._o c._n 10._o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o man_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n be_v a_o opinion_n of_o humane_a mere_o humane_a man_n the_o definition_n of_o counsel_n be_v the_o judgement_n of_o man_n vorstius_n in_o antib_n pag._n 1._o say_v that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v mere_o humane_a et_fw-la p._n 382._o a_o argument_n from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n conclude_v nothing_o contemn_a protest_v contemn_v father_n church_n and_o counsel_n not_o to_o be_v regard_v contemn_a final_o they_o profess_v to_o contemn_v both_o father_n church_n and_o counsel_n for_o thus_o write_v luther_n de_fw-fr ser_n arb_n to_o 2._o fol._n 433._o the_o father_n authority_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v et_fw-fr l._n de_fw-fr council_n twenty_o year_n ago_o i_o be_v force_v to_o contemn_v the_o father_n commentary_n melancthon_n in_o loc_n edit_fw-la an._n 1523._o i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n man_n commentary_n be_v to_o be_v flee_v like_o the_o plague_n reineccius_n to_o 4._o armat_fw-la cap._n 15._o there_o be_v father_n who_o hold_v the_o same_o error_n with_o the_o papist_n who_o testimony_n we_o reject_v as_o false_a and_o fond_a bullinger_n dec_fw-la 5._o serm._n 4._o we_o answer_v in_o one_o word_n to_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n who_o they_o object_n unto_o we_o testify_v i_o know_v not_o what_o of_o peter_n primacy_n we_o do_v not_o so_o much_o care_n what_o the_o father_n thought_n move_v little_o move_v as_o what_o christ_n have_v institute_v caluin_n 3._o institut_fw-la cap._n 14._o §_o 38._o i_o be_o little_o move_v with_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o where_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n touch_v satisfaction_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr ver_fw-la reform_v nether_a care_n i_o for_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n which_o these_o moderator_n bring_v for_o to_o tread_v down_o the_o truth_n father_n what_o to_o do_v with_o father_n humphrey_n in_o proregom_n what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o father_n with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n or_o what_o pertain_v it_o to_o we_o what_o the_o false_a synod_n of_o bishop_n do_v decree_n whitaker_n lib._n 8._o cont_n dur._n sect_n 62._o i_o care_v little_a for_o the_o father_n sect._n 69._o i_o care_v not_o what_o counsel_n we_o care_v not_o what_o to_o do_v with_o counsel_n the_o father_n thought_n of_o ihons_n baptism_n cont._n 1._o q._n 5._o c._n 10._o what_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o church_n or_o counsel_n unless_o they_o show_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o define_v be_v agreeable_a to_o scripture_n et_fw-fr l._n de_fw-fr script_n c._n 1._o sect_n 7._o a_o argument_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o bare_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confirm_v the_o scripture_n or_o any_o part_n of_o they_o or_o any_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n i_o say_v be_v invalide_v uneffectual_a and_o unfit_a to_o persuade_v jewel_n in_o apol_n part_n 4._o say_v that_o fanatical_a way_n of_o the_o church_n fanatical_a the_o way_n to_o find_v the_o truth_n by_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n be_v very_o uncertain_a very_o dangerous_a and_o in_o a_o manner_n fanatical_a thus_o thou_o see_v reader_n that_o protestant_n confess_v that_o in_o many_o and_o great_a matter_n the_o father_n the_o ancient_a all_o father_n all_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o ancient_a father_n with_o mutual_a consent_n all_o antiquity_n likewise_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o 500_o or_o 600._o year_n the_o church_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n final_o general_a counsel_n all_o general_a counsel_n be_v opposite_a to_o they_o and_o that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n do_v consist_v of_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n have_v be_v believe_v and_o receive_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o all_o deliver_v by_o the_o father_n with_o mutual_a consent_n moreover_o thou_o see_v how_o little_a they_o esteem_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o father_n church_n and_o counsel_n yea_o in_o plain_a term_n profess_v to_o contemn_v it_o i_o dispute_v not_o now_o how_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n be_v infallible_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v manifest_o prove_v by_o many_o catholics_n writer_n only_o i_o propose_v to_o the_o reader_n consideration_n how_o much_o note_n note_n protestant_n do_v prejudice_n their_o cause_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o reasonable_a man_n by_o reject_v and_o contemn_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n touch_v the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n forsooth_o young_a man_n contemn_v most_o ancient_a few_o very_o many_o disagree_v those_o that_o most_o agree_v man_n of_o mean_a wit_n or_o learning_n those_o that_o be_v most_o witty_a and_o learned_a man_n of_o small_a diligence_n those_o that_o have_v be_v most_o diligent_a vulgar_a yea_o profane_a man_n those_o that_o be_v most_o holy_a neither_o will_v admit_v such_o and_o so_o many_o man_n now_o happy_o reign_v with_o christ_n who_o nether_a know_v we_o nor_o they_o so_o that_o can_v not_o be_v partial_a either_o for_o judge_n or_o arbiter_n or_o witness_n sufficient_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o quite_o reject_v they_o as_o insufficient_a to_o decide_v this_o controversy_n sure_o hereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o sense_n which_o protestant_n attribute_v to_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o evident_a and_o consequent_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n see_v so_o many_o so_o learned_a so_o witty_a so_o holy_a so_o diligent_a searcher_n of_o scripture_n in_o so_o many_o age_n can_v not_o find_v it_o for_o as_o andrews_n say_v in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n it_o be_v monstrous_a if_o among_o so_o many_o eye_n eagle_n eye_n eye_n daily_o conversant_a in_o scripture_n i_o add_v eye_n lighten_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n none_o perceave_v this_o sense_n ground_v as_o they_o say_v must_v plain_o if_o it_o have_v be_v most_o plain_o ground_v i_o think_v some_o father_n will_v have_v see_v through_o a_o lattice_n at_o least_o he_o will_v not_o have_v deny_v it_o and_o teach_v the_o contrary_a yea_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o catholics_n expound_v the_o scripture_n be_v manifest_a see_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a father_n have_v uniform_o deliver_v it_o nor_o deliver_v it_o only_o but_o also_o condemn_v those_o who_o follow_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o protestant_n embrace_v as_o heretic_n as_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v i_o add_v also_o that_o casaubon_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o card_n perron_n thus_o write_v the_o king_n will_v willing_o grant_v that_o now_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a father_n no_o end_n of_o controversy_n without_o the_o father_n for_o any_o to_o condemn_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v evident_a to_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o age_n by_o a_o uniform_a consent_n for_o good_a and_o lawful_a again_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o weight_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v take_v away_o the_o king_n willing_o grant_v that_o among_o man_n the_o controversy_n of_o these_o time_n will_v never_o have_v a_o end_n luther_n also_o in_o defence_n verb._n caenae_n to_o 7._o if_o this_o frame_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v continue_v some_o age_n humane_a mean_n will_v be_v again_o set_v down_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o father_n for_o to_o take_v away_o distinction_n and_o law_n and_o decree_n will_v be_v make_v for_o to_o reconcile_v and_o to_o keep_v agreement_n in_o religion_n in_o form_n therefore_o thus_o i_o make_v my_o 23._o argument_n who_o not_o only_o gainsay_v the_o express_a word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o have_v be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o former_a book_n but_o also_o confess_v that_o in_o many_o and_o gerat_fw-la matter_n they_o contrary_a to_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n yea_o reject_v and_o contemn_v it_o they_o be_v also_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n protestant_n do_v so_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n chapter_n xxiv_o that_o protestant_n confess_v that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v in_o old_a time_n condemn_v for_o heresy_n the_o 24._o argument_n for_o to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n contradict_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v be_v because_o it_o be_v
fratres_n final_o luther_n in_o postilla_fw-la dome_v dom._n 1._o aduentus_fw-la say_v oh_o sorrow_n the_o world_n daily_o become_v worse_a by_o doctrine_n the_o world_n worse_o by_o luther_n doctrine_n this_o doctrine_n and_o castalio_n in_o caluin_n the_o provident_a these_o be_v the_o thing_n caluin_n which_o thy_o adversary_n report_n of_o thy_o doctrine_n and_o warn_v man_n to_o judge_v of_o this_o doctrine_n by_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o for_o they_o say_v that_o thou_o and_o thy_o disciple_n carry_v many_o fruit_n of_o thy_o god_n that_o most_o of_o you_o be_v contentious_a revengeful_a mindful_a of_o wrong_n and_o endow_v with_o such_o vice_n as_o thy_o god_n do_v suggest_v where_o thus_o i_o argue_v in_o the_o 27._o place_n who_o doctrine_n be_v not_o only_o so_o opposite_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v see_v in_o the_o first_o book_n but_o also_o take_v away_o encouragement_n to_o virtue_n yea_o all_o virtue_n out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o remove_v impediment_n of_o sin_n and_o give_v allurement_n theertoe_n that_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n chapter_n xxviii_o that_o protestant_n have_v no_o infallible_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o 28._o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n must_v needs_o contradict_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v because_o they_o have_v no_o sure_a and_o infallible_a mean_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a meaning_n thereof_o but_o before_o we_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v no_o infallible_a mean_n to_o come_v to_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v prove_v that_o scripture_n at_o lest_o in_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n need_v some_o mean_n to_o interpret_v or_o expound_v it_o to_o wit_n either_o because_o not_o where_o it_o deliver_v some_o point_n of_o faith_n so_o clear_o that_o the_o only_a word_n thereof_o sufffice_v to_o captivate_v the_o understanding_n or_o because_o though_o some_o where_o it_o deliver_v clear_o enough_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n yet_o other_o where_o it_o seem_v so_o to_o teach_v the_o contrary_a as_o without_o some_o infallible_a interpreter_n it_o will_v seem_v uncertain_a whether_o of_o the_o twoe_o it_o do_v teach_v that_o therefore_o scripture_n do_v not_o of_o itself_o teach_v interpreter_n that_o scripture_n need_v a_o interpreter_n clear_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n so_o as_o it_o need_v no_o interpreter_n for_o that_o purpose_n i_o prove_v first_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o for_o the_o holy_a eunuch_n do_v read_v the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n actor_n 8._o and_o yet_o be_v ask_v of_o philip_n whether_o he_o understand_v what_o he_o read_v answer_v and_o how_o can_v i_o if_o none_o shall_v show_v i_o you_o see_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o clear_o foretell_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o a_o pious_a man_n by_o the_o only_a word_n thereof_o without_o a_o interpreter_n can_v understand_v the_o meaning_n thereof_o and_o luk._n ult._n v._n 27._o and_o beginning_n from_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n he_o do_v interpret_v unto_o they_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v concern_v he_o et_fw-fr v._n 45._o then_o he_o open_v their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n but_o if_o christ_n disciple_n do_v not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n which_o speak_v of_o he_o and_o the_o apostle_n have_v need_v that_o christ_n shall_v open_v their_o understanding_n for_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o scripture_n by_o themselves_o do_v not_o so_o plain_o teach_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o need_v no_o interpretation_n for_o to_o be_v right_o understand_v of_o the_o faithful_a beside_o 2._o pet._n ult._n it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o that_o these_o hard_a thing_n do_v contain_v point_n of_o faith_n be_v clear_a both_o because_o without_o cause_n they_o shall_v be_v limit_v to_o other_o thing_n as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o learned_a and_o unstable_a do_v deprave_v these_o hard_a thing_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n but_o such_o thing_n be_v especial_o matter_n of_o faith_n moreover_o if_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o clear_o teach_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o for_o they_o it_o need_v no_o interpreter_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n have_v be_v superfluous_o give_v to_o the_o church_n for_o to_o expound_v scripture_n in_o matter_n belong_v to_o faith_n second_o i_o prove_v this_o out_o of_o the_o father_n but_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o one_o testimony_n of_o s._n austin_n he_n lib._n de_fw-fr vtil_n cr_v c_o 7._o to_o one_o that_o say_v when_o i_o read_v the_o scripture_n by_o myself_o i_o understand_v they_o thus_o answer_v be_v it_o so_o without_o some_o skill_n in_o poetry_n thou_o dare_v not_o read_v terentian_a maurus_n asper_n cornutus_n donatus_n and_o many_o more_o be_v necessary_a for_o to_o understand_v any_o poet_n and_o thou_o fall_v upon_o those_o book_n without_o a_o guide_n and_o dare_v give_v thy_o opinion_n of_o they_o without_o a_o teacher_n loe_o how_o plain_o he_o say_v that_o we_o can_v not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n by_o ourselves_o and_o by_o how_o familiar_a a_o example_n he_o prove_v it_o three_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o very_a confession_n of_o protestant_n for_o not_o protest_v confess_v that_o scripture_n alone_o suffice_v not_o thus_o write_v whitaker_n cont_n 1._o q._n 4._o c._n 1._o when_o bellarmin_n make_v this_o to_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o the_o scripture_n by_o itself_o be_v so_o clear_a as_o without_o any_o interpretation_n it_o suffice_v of_o itself_o to_o determine_v and_o decide_v all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n he_o fight_v without_o a_o adversary_n for_o sure_o in_o this_o point_n we_o be_v not_o against_o he_o again_o they_o say_v that_o we_o think_v but_o false_o that_o all_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o that_o they_o without_o any_o interpretation_n be_v sufficient_a to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n without_o behold_v how_o plain_o he_o deni_v that_o protestant_n think_v that_o scripture_n of_o itself_o without_o any_o interpretation_n be_v sufficient_a to_o end_v all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o like_a have_v junius_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o when_o he_o grant_v that_o scripture_n need_v a_o interpreter_n kemnice_n 1._o part_n exa_fw-la p._n 104._o it_o have_v need_n of_o the_o gift_n and_o help_n of_o interpretation_n and_o the_o magdeburgians_n cent._n 1._o l._n 2._o c._n 4._o the_o apostle_n think_v that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v understand_v without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o a_o interpreter_n and_o the_o same_o mea_z all_o other_o protestant_n who_o admit_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a or_o that_o the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n be_v needful_a for_o the_o exposition_n thereof_o for_o doubtless_o they_o mean_v that_o as_o well_o of_o such_o place_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v as_o of_o other_o &_o this_o caluin_n 4._o inst_z c_o 17._o §_o 25._o clear_o enough_o insinuate_v where_o when_o catholik_o object_v that_o they_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v his_o body_n he_o answer_v indeed_o if_o they_o may_v banish_v the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n out_o of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o he_o think_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n even_o for_o to_o expound_v scripture_n touch_v point_n of_o faith_n such_o as_o the_o eucharist_n be_v furthermore_o plessie_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccl._n c._n 3._o write_v that_o the_o controversy_n of_o schism_n can_v be_v proper_o decide_v by_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n than_o doctrine_n if_o therefore_o scripture_n by_o itself_o can_v determine_v nether_a the_o question_n of_o schism_n nor_o yet_o all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o some_o be_v necessary_a and_o that_o also_o infallible_a because_o fallible_a interpretation_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o put_v we_o out_o of_o doubt_n and_o sure_o protestant_n must_v needs_o teach_v that_o scripture_n by_o itself_o alone_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n both_o because_o else_o it_o have_v decide_v all_o controversy_n among_o themselves_o or_o between_o any_o that_o be_v not_o obstinate_a as_o also_o because_o scarce_o in_o any_o controversy_n that_o be_v betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o scripture_n do_v so_o much_o as_o in_o show_v direct_o and_o immediate_o give_v sentence_n for_o they_o but_o they_o have_v need_v to_o
confer_v place_n and_o adjoine_v thereto_o some_o humane_a principle_n and_o make_v a_o argument_n for_o to_o draw_v in_o what_o manner_n soever_o their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o scripture_n which_o conference_n of_o place_n adiunction_n of_o a_o humane_a principle_n and_o discourse_n see_v it_o be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o protestant_n by_o their_o gift_n of_o interpretatation_n they_o must_v needs_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v need_n of_o interpretation_n for_o to_o determine_v all_o the_o controversy_n that_o be_v betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n albeit_o thereof_o when_o protest_v will_v have_v express_v scripture_n when_o consequence_n thereof_o when_o they_o put_v we_o to_o the_o proof_n they_o use_v to_o cry_v nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v they_o will_v have_v it_o suffice_v that_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o scripture_n by_o good_a consequence_n for_o so_o say_v the_o lutheran_n in_o colloq_fw-la ratisbon_n sess_n 3_o &_o 13._o kemnice_n in_o 1._o part_n exam._n p._n 320._o beza_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la acta_fw-la montisb_n part_n 2_o p._n 46._o &_o l._n de_fw-fr notis_n eccles_n daneus_fw-la cont._n 1._o p._n 86._o pareus_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr justif_a c._n 16._o piscator_fw-la de_fw-fr justif_a l._n 1._o c._n 5._o rivet_v in_o contr._n tract_n 1._o sect_n 18._o and_o other_o common_o and_o see_v this_o inference_n by_o good_a consequence_n be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o themselves_o by_o their_o interpretation_n they_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o beside_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v necessary_a some_o interpreter_n for_o to_o know_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n now_o that_o protestant_n have_v no_o infallible_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v manifest_a first_o because_o they_o confess_v that_o interpreter_n protest_v have_v no_o infallible_a interpreter_n that_o they_o have_v no_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n pareus_n in_o colleg._n theol_n 2._o disp_n 1._o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v abide_v any_o infallible_a interpreter_n beside_o god_n himself_o who_o inspire_v the_o scripture_n second_o because_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o whole_a senate_n of_o father_n the_o catholic_a church_n or_o general_a counsel_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o infallible_a interpretation_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o ridiculous_o shall_v they_o arrogate_v this_o gift_n to_o themselves_o and_o see_v they_o teach_v that_o all_o pastor_n together_o and_o all_o the_o true_a church_n whichsoever_o it_o be_v may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o can_v challenge_v to_o their_o pastor_n this_o infallible_a gift_n three_o for_o if_o they_o do_v infallible_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n either_o they_o do_v it_o by_o mean_n or_o without_o mean_n not_o without_o mean_n for_o such_o interpretation_n be_v prophetical_a by_o immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n or_o rather_o enthusiasticall_a by_o illusion_n from_o the_o devil_n whereupon_o say_v whitaker_n cont._n 2._o q._n 4._o c._n 5._o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v the_o church_n to_o interpret_v these_o place_n of_o scripture_n without_o mean_n interpret_v protest_v require_v mean_n to_o interpret_v this_o be_v enthusiasticall_a and_o anabaptisticall_a and_o extraordinary_a for_o the_o spirit_n teach_v now_o only_o by_o mean_n nether_a must_v we_o now_o look_v for_o new_a inspiration_n or_o revelation_n et_fw-la cont_n 1._o q._n 5._o c._n 9_o now_o must_v we_o treat_v of_o the_o mean_n to_o find_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o since_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o a_o lively_a voice_n for_o we_o to_o hear_v we_o must_v use_v some_o mean_n for_o to_o find_v out_o which_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n again_o the_o church_n have_v always_o use_v some_o mean_n for_o to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n but_o if_o they_o expound_v the_o scripture_n by_o mean_n than_o according_a to_o their_o own_o opinion_n if_o their_o mean_n be_v fallible_a their_o interpretation_n also_o must_v be_v fallible_a for_o thus_o whitaker_n c._n 3._o cit_fw-la if_o by_o mean_n than_o such_o as_o the_o mean_n be_v such_o must_v needs_o the_o interpretation_n be_v but_o the_o mean_n which_o protestant_n have_v be_v but_o humane_a and_o fallible_a for_o as_o they_o grant_v they_o be_v no_o other_o than_o such_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n holy_a father_n &_o general_a counsel_n have_v use_v for_o thus_o whitaker_n c._n 3._o cit_fw-la but_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n to_o expound_v obscure_a place_n be_v uncertain_a doubtful_a and_o ambiguous_a and_o they_o must_v needs_o say_v so_o because_o otherwise_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n second_o because_o the_o mean_n humane_a protest_v mean_n but_o humane_a which_o protestant_n use_v be_v these_o ponder_v of_o circumstance_n of_o the_o stile_n and_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n conference_n of_o place_n recur_v to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a text_n prayer_n and_o the_o like_a as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o rainolds_n confer_v lib._n 2._o divis_fw-la 2._o confess_v heluet._n c._n 2._o whitaker_n cont._n 1._o q._n 5._o c._n 9_o humphrey_n ad_fw-la rat._n 1._o camp_n and_o other_o but_o all_o these_o mean_n be_v humane_a for_o they_o be_v our_o ponder_a our_o conference_n our_o recur_v our_o prayer_n and_o all_o humane_a mean_n be_v fallible_a as_o every_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o lie_v three_o because_o no_o where_n in_o scripture_n be_v there_o promise_v infallible_a assistance_n to_o they_o that_o use_v these_o mean_n and_o if_o any_o say_v that_o it_o be_v promise_v to_o prayer_n whatsoever_o we_o ask_v first_o he_o make_v only_a prayer_n a_o infallible_a means_n again_o it_o suffice_v not_o to_o pray_v how_o soever_o but_o we_o must_v pray_v well_o and_o perseverantlie_o for_o jac._n 4._o v._n 3._o it_o be_v say_v you_o pray_v and_o obtain_v not_o because_o you_o pray_v ill_a but_o it_o be_v not_o pray_v well_o that_o every_o private_a man_n by_o himself_o shall_v understand_v the_o scripture_n but_o rather_o ill_a because_o the_o scripture_n say_v malac._n 2._o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n keep_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v require_v the_o law_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n and_o ephes_n 4._o he_o have_v give_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n for_o the_o consumnation_n of_o saint_n four_o because_o all_o use_v these_o mean_n catholics_n heretic_n jew_n and_o yet_o all_o do_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o they_o five_o because_o protestant_n themselves_o do_v insinuate_v infallible_a their_o mean_n not_o infallible_a that_o these_o mean_n be_v not_o infallible_a for_o whitaker_n beside_o the_o word_n already_o relate_v say_v count_n 1._o q._n 5._o c._n 9_o &_o 10._o that_o we_o must_v use_v these_o mean_n right_o and_o thereby_o declare_v that_o these_o mean_n be_v not_o infallible_a unless_o they_o be_v right_o use_v and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o set_v down_o the_o mean_a how_o to_o use_v they_o right_o et_fw-fr c._n 10._o cit_fw-la add_v that_o all_o these_o mean_n must_v be_v accommodate_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v clear_o enough_o show_v that_o of_o themselves_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a rainolds_n also_o loc_n cit_fw-la say_v that_o all_o their_o mean_n be_v vain_a unless_o god_n give_v eye_n to_o see_v sixth_o these_o mean_n be_v not_o only_o fallible_a but_o also_o insufficient_a all_o their_o mean_n not_o common_a to_o all_o for_o we_o must_v not_o only_o know_v to_o confer_v place_n but_o also_o what_o place_n be_v to_o be_v confer_v and_o what_o not_o and_o with_o what_o place_n they_o be_v to_o be_v confer_v and_o with_o what_o not_o beside_o we_o must_v know_v how_o we_o must_v confer_v for_o otherwise_o as_o tertullian_n say_v of_o examine_v scripture_n we_o may_v say_v of_o confer_v as_o if_o have_v ill_o examine_v all_o we_o may_v not_o fall_v into_o error_n by_o make_v choice_n of_o some_o evil_n but_o the_o foresay_v mean_n teach_v we_o not_o this_o final_o these_o mean_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a for_o thus_o write_v whitaker_n c._n 9_o cit_fw-la the_o unlearned_a know_v not_o how_o to_o use_v these_o mean_n right_o and_o rainolds_n libr._n cit_fw-la cap._n 5._o divis_fw-la 1._o because_o the_o infirm_a and_o unlearned_a sort_n of_o christian_n have_v no_o skill_n to_o discern_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o false_a he_o vincent_n accommodate_v himself_o to_o their_o infirmity_n and_o give_v they_o external_a sensible_a mean_n to_o know_v it_o i_o ask_v therefore_o whether_o unlearned_a protestant_n do_v true_o know_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o mean_n or_o without_o mean_n if_o without_o mean_n they_o be_v enthusiast_n if_o by_o mean_n there_o be_v other_o than_o those_o
scripture_n protest_v torment_a with_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n 21._o the_o protestant_n interpreter_n do_v torment_v themselves_o in_o that_o daniel_n seem_v to_o attribute_v redemption_n or_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o man_n justice_n and_o work_n of_o mercy_n for_o they_o well_o admonish_v that_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n daneus_n in_o c._n 67._o enchir._n aug._n say_v that_o say_v of_o s._n james_n we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o do_v this_o day_n torment_v many_o so_o that_o some_o have_v reject_v the_o epistle_n other_o have_v call_v it_o strawish_a kemnice_n in_o loc_n to_o 2._o tit_n de_fw-fr argum._n that_o say_v of_o daniel_n c._n 4._o seem_v very_o hard_a against_o free_a justification_n the_o three_o way_n by_o which_o they_o tacitelie_o confess_v that_o doctrine_n protest_v force_v to_o deny_v their_o doctrine_n their_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n be_v because_o when_o it_o make_v for_o their_o purpose_n they_o deny_v that_o they_o teach_v many_o of_o those_o point_n which_o in_o the_o former_a book_n we_o have_v clearelie_o show_v that_o they_o plain_o teach_v and_o because_o they_o do_v this_o so_o frequent_o as_o i_o need_v not_o bring_v many_o example_n thereof_o i_o will_v here_o cite_v only_o some_o few_o touch_v god_n pareus_n thus_o write_v colleg._n theol._n 9_o disp_n 32._o it_o be_v a_o slander_n that_o we_o simple_o say_v that_o god_n will_v and_o decree_v that_o our_o first_o parent_n shall_v fall_v see_v l._n 1._o cap._n 2._o art_n 5._o of_o scripture_n thus_o whitaker_n cont._n 1._o q._n 4._o cap._n 1._o our_o adversary_n attribute_n unto_o we_o this_o doctrine_n as_o if_o we_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v fail_v which_o be_v most_o false_a see_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o art_n the_o same_o man_n q_o 3._o cit_fw-la c._n 2._o our_o adversary_n slander_n we_o when_o they_o say_v that_o we_o make_v such_o a_o church_n which_o sometime_o be_v no_o where_o and_o can_v be_v see_v of_o none_o see_v l._n 1._o c._n 8._o art_n 5._o touch_v the_o eucharist_n eliensis_n resp_n ad_fw-la apol._n bellar._n c._n 1._o we_o agree_v with_o you_o of_o the_o matter_n all_o the_o contention_n be_v about_o the_o manner_n a_o presence_n i_o say_v we_o believe_v nor_o less_o real_a than_o you_o perkins_n in_o cath._n refor_o contr._n 10._o cap._n 1._o we_o believe_v and_o teach_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n and_o that_o not_o feign_v but_o true_a and_o real_a argentinenses_n in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o histor_n be_v they_o accurse_v who_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o be_v exhibit_v here_o but_o a_o sign_n and_o figure_n and_o hospinian_n himself_o our_o man_n never_o deny_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o in_o their_o supper_n beza_n l._n qq_fw-la say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o slander_n that_o they_o exclude_v christ_n from_o their_o supper_n gratianus_n antiiesuita_n p._n 140._o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n whether_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n et_fw-la rivet_v tract_n 3._o sec_fw-la 12._o the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v not_o simple_o whether_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o in_o this_o sacrament_n et_fw-la spalatensis_n libr._n contr_n suar._n cap._n 1._o num_fw-la 39_o who_o deni_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o only_a flesh_n and_o only_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n see_v the_o contrary_a of_o all_o these_o lib._n 1._o c._n 11._o art_n 1._o touch_v faith_n thus_o write_v peter_n martyr_n in_o loc_n class_n 3._o §_o 24._o we_o make_v faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n three_o different_a thing_n nether_a do_v we_o confound_v they_o as_o our_o adversary_n accuse_v us._n see_v the_o contrary_a lib._n 1._o c._n 13._o art_n 6._o of_o good_a work_n thus_o tilenus_n in_o syntag._n cap._n 46._o it_o be_v a_o cruel_a slander_n of_o our_o adversary_n where_o they_o feign_v that_o we_o teach_v that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o just_a be_v proper_o and_o simple_o sin_n et_fw-la rivet_v tract_n 3._o sect_n 31._o none_o of_o we_o say_v absolute_o that_o all_o work_n be_v sin_n neither_o say_v we_o that_o they_o be_v mingle_v with_o sin_n absolute_o see_v the_o contrary_a lib._n 1._o c._n 14._o art_n 2._o touch_v good_a work_n in_o particular_a thus_o rivet_v tract_n 1._o sect_n 73._o we_o reject_v this_o position_n that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o condition_n necessary_a to_o a_o bishop_n that_o he_o be_v marry_v see_v the_o contrary_a lib._n 1._o cap._n 15._o art_n 4._o of_o reward_n thus_o the_o some_o rivet_v 3._o sect_n 39_o we_o deny_v not_o the_o reward_n of_o good_a work_n see_v the_o contrary_a lib._n 1._o c._n 14._o art_n 7._o c._n 18._o arr_n 1._o of_o free_a will_n thus_o serranus_n l._n 3._o cont_n hayum_n do_v any_o of_o we_o deny_v or_o ever_o deny_v that_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v do_v fall_v to_o sin_n of_o their_o prone_a and_o free_a will_n see_v the_o contrary_a lib._n 1._o c._n 16._o art_n 14._o but_o final_o they_o do_v plain_o and_o express_o grant_v that_o god_n protest_v confess_v much_o of_o their_o doctrine_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n of_o god_n many_o point_n of_o protestant_n doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n for_o touch_v god_n thus_o write_v confessio_fw-la saxon._n c._n god_n nether_a will_v sin_n nor_o approve_v nor_o help_v it_o as_o it_o be_v write_v when_o the_o devil_n speak_v a_o lie_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o and_o 1._o joan._n 3._o who_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n gerlachius_n tom_n 2._o disput_fw-la 15._o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v will_v sin_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v psalm_n 5._o thou_o be_v not_o a_o god_n that_o will_v ini-inquitie_a et_fw-la polanus_fw-la in_o disput_fw-la private_a p._n 235._o god_n nether_a will_v nor_o can_v will_v the_o ill_a of_o offence_n or_o sin_n proper_o take_v psal_n 5._o vers_fw-la 5._o melancthon_n in_o disput_fw-la to_o 4._o p._n 623._o the_o conference_n of_o the_o continual_a doctrine_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v show_v that_o god_n nether_a wille●●_n nor_o work_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v express_o say_v thou_o be_v not_o a_o gad_n that_o will_v iniquity_n and_o out_o of_o this_o same_o place_n pareus_n in_o colleg._n theol._n 1._o disp_n 2._o prove_v that_o god_n will_v be_v no_o efficient_a cause_n of_o sin_n and_o yet_o protestant_n teach_v both_o that_o god_n will_v sin_n and_o work_v sin_n see_v lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o art_n 1._o 4._o they_o teach_v also_o that_o god_n have_v ordain_v and_o predestinate_v man_n to_o sin_n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o art_n 5._o of_o which_o doctrine_n melancthon_n in_o disp_n to_o 4._o p._n 572._o give_v this_o censure_n there_o be_v certain_a frantic_a fellow_n much_o worse_o than_o the_o stoic_n who_o teach_v that_o god_n of_o himself_o do_v ordain_v and_o predestine_v heinous_a sin_n and_o that_o he_o will_v they_o and_o not_o only_o suffer_v they_o and_o in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr causa_fw-la peccat_fw-la sin_n be_v nether_a do_v of_o god_n nor_o ordain_v of_o he_o they_o teach_v that_o god_n command_v urge_v and_o tempt_v to_o sin_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o art_n 7._o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n by_o judgement_n of_o rivet_v tract_n 3._o sect_n 33._o the_o scripture_n express_o say_v that_o god_n will_v not_o iniquity_n that_o he_o command_v none_o to_o do_v ill_a that_o he_o can_v tempt_v to_o ill_o moulins_n in_o his_o bucler_n p._n 97._o god_n do_v not_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o do_v ill_a as_o it_o be_v say_v ps_n 45._o thou_o have_v love_v justice_n and_o hate_a iniquity_n et_fw-la calu._n in_o math._n 4._o v._n 1._o whereupon_o we_o gather_v that_o tentation_n which_o incite_v we_o to_o ill_a come_v not_o from_o god_n they_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v not_o angry_a with_o the_o faithful_a when_o they_o work_v iniquity_n lib._n 1._o c._n 2._o art_n 11._o which_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n protestant_n in_o zanchius_n in_o supplicat_fw-la confess_v in_o these_o word_n god_n do_v threaten_v his_o anger_n to_o all_o the_o transgressor_n of_o his_o law_n and_o they_o cite_v thereto_o that_o ps_n 5._o thou_o have_v hate_v all_o that_o work_n iniquity_n they_o teach_v that_o god_n have_v no_o will_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v li._n c._n 2._o art_n 19_o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n as_o confess_v hemingius_n in_o these_o word_n in_o enchir._n clas_fw-la 3._o they_o accuse_v god_n of_o a_o lie_n whosoever_o think_v that_o he_o will_v not_o the_o salvation_n of_o some_o as_o far_o as_o pertain_v to_o
the_o counsel_n of_o creation_n gesnerus_fw-la in_o compend_v loc_fw-la 30._o the_o scripture_n do_v plain_o testify_v that_o god_n have_v in_o earnest_a a_o will_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v affelman_fw-mi de_fw-fr praed_n §_o 36._o the_o scripture_n testify_v by_o word_n by_o oath_n by_o tell_v by_o oblation_n that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v they_o teach_v that_o god_n do_v not_o call_v all_o man_n to_o he_o nor_o offer_v his_o grace_n to_o they_o l._n 1._o c._n 2._o art_n 21._o of_o which_o thus_o write_v illyricus_n in_o cleave_v part_n 2._o tract_n 4._o some_o by_o misunderstand_v predestination_n use_v hurteful_o to_o restrain_v the_o universal_a promise_n and_o calling_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o make_v they_o particular_n by_o which_o error_n of_o they_o they_o quite_o overthrow_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n gerlachius_n to_o 2._o disp_n 15._o the_o plain_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n do_v prove_v the_o universal_a will_n of_o god_n hemingius_n in_o schlus_n l._n 1._o theol._n calu._n art_n 11._o who_o deny_v grace_n to_o be_v universal_a do_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n oppose_v themselves_o and_o other_o the_o like_a have_v confess_v saxon._n c._n 4._o they_o deny_v that_o god_n wrath_n be_v appease_v by_o good_a work_n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o art_n 16._o and_o yet_o thus_o have_v confessio_fw-la aug._n art_n 11._o we_o confess_v that_o by_o good_a work_n present_a calamity_n be_v aswage_v as_o i_o say_v teach_v c._n 58._o the_o like_a have_v apol._n conf._n c._n the_o resp_n ad_fw-la argum._n touch_v christ_n they_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v god_n of_o god_n l._n 1._o christ_n of_o christ_n c._n 3_o art_n 1._o and_o yet_o the_o minister_n of_o poland_n in_o zanchius_n epist_n 1._o say_v it_o be_v judaisme_n he_o deni_v say_v they_o with_o the_o jew_n that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o god_n they_o teach_v that_o christ_n humanity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v invocate_v or_o adore_v l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 3._o of_o which_o thus_o write_v caluin_n admonit_a ult._n they_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v no_o where_o any_o precept_n of_o adore_v christ_n body_n sure_o of_o christ_n as_o man_n it_o be_v proper_o speak_v god_n have_v exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o austin_n right_o gather_v from_o hence_o that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n they_o teach_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 6._o and_o yet_o thus_o write_v kickerman_n l._n 3._o system_fw-la p._n 322._o there_o be_v give_v also_o to_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o union_n the_o high_a power_n of_o office_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o that_o be_v full_a power_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n they_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o judge_v as_o he_o be_v man_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 8._o and_o yet_o lobechius_n disp_n 19_o whence_o it_o be_v right_o gather_v that_o christ_n have_v judicial_a power_n not_o only_o by_o his_o deity_n but_o also_o by_o his_o humanity_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o like_a have_v caluin_n in_o ro._n 2._o v._n 16._o they_o deny_v that_o christ_n humanity_n have_v power_n to_o give_v life_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 4._o of_o which_o thus_o hutter_n in_o anal._n p._n 293._o who_o shall_v dare_v to_o deny_v that_o power_n of_o give_v life_n be_v give_v to_o christ_n humanity_n he_o do_v manifest_o accuse_v christ_n who_o joan._n 6._o oftentimes_o attribute_v this_o power_n to_o his_o flesh_n they_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o make_v a_o new_a testament_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 9_o of_o which_o point_n thus_o pronounce_v gerlachius_n to_o 2._o disp_n 14._o this_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n then_o to_o contradict_v the_o apostle_n et_fw-la schlusselb_n l._n 1._o theol._n art_n 17._o the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v that_o there_o be_v twoe_o covenant_n or_o testament_n and_o not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n the_o same_o say_v illyricus_n praefat_fw-la in_o now_o testam_fw-la they_o deny_v that_o christ_n redeem_v we_o with_o his_o blood_n or_o corporal_a death_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 17._o of_o which_o doctrine_n this_o censure_n give_v serranus_n contr_n hayum_n part_n 3._o the_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v purge_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o our_o sin_n be_v plain_o expiate_v that_o god_n by_o that_o price_n pay_v for_o we_o be_v true_o appease_v calu._n res_fw-la ad_fw-la sadolet_n p._n 126._o run_v over_o all_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n if_o the_o only_a blood_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o propose_v for_o the_o price_n of_o satisfaction_n for_o pacification_n for_o oblation_n with_o what_o bouldenesse_n dare_v thou_o etc._n etc._n moulins_n in_o his_o bucler_n p._n 154._o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o christ_n death_n be_v a_o full_a and_o entire_a satisfaction_n they_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o die_v for_o those_o that_o be_v damn_v l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 18._o of_o which_o point_n thus_o write_v hutter_n in_o anal._n art_n 3._o it_o be_v false_a which_o the_o caluinist_n feign_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o offer_v for_o all_o but_o for_o some_o only_o the_o impiety_n of_o which_o doctrine_n all_o the_o scripture_n do_v great_o refute_v gerlachius_n to_o 2._o disput_fw-la 15._o they_o lie_v horrible_o that_o god_n the_o father_n do_v appoint_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o son_n for_o some_o only_o against_o this_o blasphemy_n we_o oppose_v the_o most_o clear_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n polanus_fw-la part_n 3._o thes_n christ_n die_v for_o all_o ro._n 5._o v._n 2._o cor._n 5._o v._n 15._o and_o roger_n art_n 3._o put_v it_o as_o a_o error_n in_o faith_n they_o say_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherewith_o we_o be_v redeem_v be_v corrupt_v and_o now_o no_o more_o in_o be_v l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 20._o which_o schusselb_n l._n 1._o theol._n at_o 20._o prove_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 21._o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n as_o testify_v lobechius_n disput_fw-la 6._o in_o these_o word_n we_o believe_v and_o embrace_v with_o simple_a faith_n as_o true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n that_o christ_n true_o descend_v into_o hell_n luther_n in_o ps_n 16._o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o soul_n of_o christ_n in_o substance_n descend_v into_o hell_n they_o deny_v that_o christ_n enter_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o door_n be_v shut_v l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 23._o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o scripture_n according_a to_o luther_n in_o def_n verb._n cenae_fw-la to_o 7._o the_o testimony_n say_v he_o of_o scripture_n be_v manifest_a that_o christ_n pass_v through_o the_o door_n shut_v unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la in_o histor_n resur_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 4._o the_o evangelist_n joan_n do_v witness_v that_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v and_o that_o jesus_n enter_v in_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v they_o deny_v that_o christ_n pray_v for_o we_o in_o heaven_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o art_n 25._o which_o be_v opposite_a to_o scripture_n as_o melancthon_n confess_v in_o resp_n ad_fw-la art_n bavar_n say_v he_o be_v to_o be_v detest_v who_o deni_v that_o christ_n now_o pray_v for_o we_o since_o it_o be_v plain_o write_v to_o the_o hebrew_n always_o live_v that_o he_o may_v pray_v for_o us._n et_fw-fr kemnice_n in_o exam._n part_n 3._o c._n de_fw-fr inuoc_fw-fr say_v that_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o scripture_n and_o deprive_v christ_n of_o a_o part_n of_o his_o preisthood_n touch_v angel_n and_o saint_n they_o teach_v that_o the_o glory_n saintes_n of_o saintes_n of_o all_o saint_n be_v equal_a l._n 1._o c._n 4._o art_n 3._o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o caluin_n in_o 1._o cor._n 15._o v._n 41._o it_o be_v most_o true_a and_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v different_a degree_n of_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n they_o deny_v that_o angel_n or_o saint_n pray_v for_o we_o cap._n 4._o art_n 4._o which_o the_o same_o caluin_n avouch_v to_o be_v against_o scripture_n in_o zachar._n 1._o v._o 12._o the_o scripture_n witness_v that_o angel_n suppliant_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o we_o zacharie_n say_v that_o the_o angel_n pray_v o_o lord_n of_o host_n apol._n conf._n aug._n c._n de_fw-fr inuoc_fw-fr we_o grant_v that_o angel_n pray_v for_o us._n for_o there_o be_v
testimony_n zach._n 1._o where_o the_o angel_n pray_v o_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o same_o say_v p._n martyr_n in_o rom._n 8._o &_o schlus_n to_o 8._o catal._n p._n 65._o they_o deny_v that_o angel_n offer_v up_o our_o prayer_n to_o god_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o art_n 7._o which_o beza_n teach_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n in_o apoc._n 8._o v._o 3._o john_n learned_a by_o this_o vision_n that_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n in_o this_o world_n to_o wit_n of_o those_o that_o daily_o offer_v to_o god_n pure_a sacrifice_n of_o prayer_n and_o good_a deed_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n they_o deny_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v to_o saint_n lib._n 1._o c._n 4_o art_n 8._o which_o to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o scripture_n thus_o confess_v luther_n to_o 1._o de_fw-la 1_o precept_n f._n 12._o i_o say_v that_o in_o any_o case_n we_o must_v recurre_v to_o the_o suffrage_n of_o saint_n as_o in_o job_n it_o be_v say_v and_o turn_v thyself_o to_o some_o of_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o solomon_n allege_v his_o father_n remember_v david_n o_o lord._n and_o also_o the_o patriach_n jacob_n say_v of_o ephraim_n and_o manasse_n let_v my_o name_n be_v invocate_v upon_o these_o child_n touch_v scripture_n they_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o scripture_n of_o scripture_n hard_a in_o it_o lib._n 1._o c._n 5._o art_n 1._o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n as_o confess_v christian_n ad_fw-la portum_fw-la lib._n count_v verron_n we_o confess_v say_v he_o plain_o with_o s._n peter_n as_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n so_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n hard_a to_o understand_v whitaker_n lib._n 6._o cont_n dur._n sect_n 22._o i_o confess_v as_o peter_n say_v that_o there_o in_o scripture_n many_o thing_n hard_a to_o understand_v the_o like_a say_v pareus_n in_o gal._n 2._o lect_n 25._o they_o teach_v that_o the_o law_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o art_n 7._o of_o which_o doctrine_n thus_o serranus_n count_v hayum_n part_n 3._o with_o a_o more_o gross_a and_o dangerous_a ignorance_n do_v he_o oppose_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n like_o twoe_o principle_n of_o maniche_n as_o if_o they_o be_v contrary_a concern_v s._n peter_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n be_v peter_n of_o s._n peter_n found_v upon_o he_o l._n 1._o c._n 6._o art_n 2._o which_o to_o be_v against_o scripture_n thus_o confess_v whitaker_n cont._n 4._o q._n 2._o cap._n 2._o we_o deny_v not_o that_o peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o they_o require_v we_o will_v grant_v also_o that_o this_o be_v promise_v to_o he_o in_o these_o word_n et._n l._n 5._o cont_n dur._n sec_fw-la 4._o who_o do_v not_o confess_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o art_n 3._o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n for_o thus_o spalatensis_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr rep._n c._n 7._o christ_n express_o say_v to_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n wherefore_o fairewell_o they_o and_o let_v they_o be_v go_v who_o use_v force_n to_o the_o letter_n will_v have_v the_o key_n to_o be_v give_v or_o promise_v not_o immediate_o to_o peter_n but_o exclude_v peter_n person_n either_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o to_o some_o other_o that_o be_v not_o peter_n et_fw-la whitaker_n cont._n 4._o q._n 2._o c._n 4._o i_o grant_v that_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v to_o peter_n for_o the_o place_n do_v convince_v that_o and_o i_o will_v never_o repugn_v eliensis_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la apol._n bellar._n c._n 8._o who_o doubt_v that_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v to_o peter_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o art_n 5._o which_o rainolds_n in_o his_o confer_v c._n 2._o sec_fw-la 1._o acknowledge_v to_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n in_o these_o word_n the_o 12._o apostle_n be_v call_v 12._o foundation_n apoc._n 21._o v._o 14._o et_fw-la serran_n count_v hayum_n part_n 3._o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v term_v in_o scripture_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o deny_v that_o there_o pastor_n of_o pastor_n be_v always_o some_o l._n 1._o c._n 7._o art_n 1._o which_o thus_o censure_v melancthon_n apud_fw-la luther_n 10._o 1._o f._n 483._o where_o the_o church_n be_v there_o must_v be_v the_o right_a order_n of_o minister_n because_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n be_v one_o of_o the_o proper_a gift_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o that_o ephes_n 4._o he_o give_v pastor_n etc._n etc._n kemnice_n in_o exam._n part_n 2._o tit_n de_fw-fr ordine_fw-la the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o will_v have_v the_o ministry_n of_o those_o that_o teach_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v conserve_v with_o a_o continual_a vocation_n in_o the_o church_n so_o paul_n say_v ephes_n 4._o et_fw-la caluin_n in_o ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 13._o here_o paul_n admonis_fw-la h_v that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v not_o for_o a_o time_n but_o perpetual_a as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v in_o the_o world_n touch_v the_o church_n they_o deny_v that_o she_o do_v perpetual_o church_n of_o the_o church_n endure_v l._n 1._o c._n 8._o art_n 4._o and_o notwithstanding_o whitaker_n cont_n 2._o q._n 3._o c._n 2._o say_v who_o deni_v or_o doubt_v that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v for_o cuer_v and_o to_o continue_v for_o ever_o he_o be_v no_o christian_a they_o deny_v also_o that_o she_o be_v always_o visible_a l._n 1._o c._n 8._o art_n 5._o which_o thus_o condemn_v daneus_n l._n de_fw-fr visib_n eccles_n who_o deni_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o she_o to_o have_v be_v visible_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n he_o doubtless_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o first_o page_n of_o the_o bible_n et_fw-la reineccius_n to_o 4._o arm._n c._n 3._o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n teach_v that_o the_o visible_a company_n never_o perish_v quite_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v even_o in_o fundamental_a point_n lib._n 1._o c._n 8._o art_n 6._o and_o yet_o caluin_n write_v 4._o instit_fw-la c._n §_o 10._o by_o which_o word_n paul_n do_v signify_v that_o to_o the_o end_n god_n truth_n fail_v not_o in_o the_o world_n the_o church_n be_v a_o faithful_a keeper_n thereof_o touch_v baptism_n they_o deny_v that_o either_o water_n or_o baptism_n of_o baptism_n the_o name_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n be_v necessary_a thereto_o l._n 1._o c._n 10._o art_n 1._o 2._o and_o yet_o reineccius_n to_o 4._o armat_fw-la c._n 18._o thus_o write_v beza_n most_o fond_o imagine_v that_o in_o want_n of_o water_n we_o may_v use_v other_o liquor_n and_o beza_n l._n quaestionum_fw-la &_o resp_n vol._n 3._o if_o any_o shall_v not_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o for_o water_n especial_o witting_o shall_v use_v some_o other_o thing_n sure_o this_o will_v not_o be_v the_o baptism_n which_o christ_n institute_v pareus_n in_o colleg._n theol._n 9_o disp_n 22._o there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o doubt_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n ought_v to_o be_v administer_v only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n they_o deny_v that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a to_o infant_n l._n 1._o c._n 10._o art_n 9_o of_o which_o thing_n melancthon_n in_o catechesi_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3._o give_v this_o judgement_n i_o answer_v that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a to_o infant_n because_o christ_n commandment_n be_v universal_a joan._n 3._o unless_a etc._n etc._n vrbanus_n regius_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la heminge_n to_o 2._o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v right_o believe_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n before_o they_o be_v baptize_v l._n 1._o c._n 10_o art_n 9_o which_o thus_o condemn_v schlusselburg_n l._n 1._o theol._n art_n 18._o it_o may_v be_v prove_v many_o way_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o holy_a from_o their_o mother_n womb_n they_o say_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o the_o laver_n of_o the_o soul_n nor_o purge_v sin_n l._n 1._o cap._n 10._o art_n 6._o and_o yet_o thus_o write_v beza_n in_o prae._n 2._o part_n resp_n ad_fw-la montisb_n do_v ever_o any_o christian_a deny_v that_o baptism_n be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n which_o the_o apostle_n witness_v in_o express_a word_n et_fw-la shlusselb_n l._n 1._o theol._n art_n 18._o this_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o caluinist_n that_o baptism_n do_v not_o purge_v sin_n the_o holy_a ghost_n
in_o many_o place_n refute_v in_o like_a sort_n graver_n in_o absurdis_fw-la caluin_n c._n 14._o ser_n 10._o touch_v the_o eucharist_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n eucharist_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n l._n 1._o c._n 11._o art_n 1._o which_o be_v against_o scripture_n for_o thus_o muscul_n in_o loc_n do_fw-mi de_fw-fr caena_n i_o may_v not_o say_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o in_o so_o say_v i_o shall_v contradict_v the_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n again_o otherwise_o bread_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n against_o his_o express_a word_n beza_n in_o hosp_n part_n 2._o f._n 300._o be_v ask_v whether_o he_o dislike_v that_o one_o shall_v say_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n answer_v no_o for_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n et_fw-la hosp_n ib._n f._n 136._o we_o deny_v not_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n himself_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o say_v that_o those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n must_v be_v thus_o expound_v this_o signify_v my_o body_n of_o which_o exposition_n musculus_fw-la in_o schlusselb_n l._n 1._o theol._n caluin_n art_n 22._o give_v this_o judgement_n we_o must_v beware_v of_o that_o exposition_n wherewith_o christ_n word_n be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o same_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v this_o signify_v my_o body_n for_o this_o be_v not_o christ_n meaning_n to_o show_v that_o this_o bread_n signify_v his_o body_n they_o deny_v that_o christ_n give_v we_o his_o body_n to_o eat_v or_o his_o blood_n to_o drink_v l._n 1._o c._n 11._o art_n 2._o which_o doctrine_n thus_o censure_v caluin_n l._n de_fw-la neces_fw-la ref_o christ_n say_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o he_o give_v they_o his_o body_n beza_n epist_n 5._o but_o i_o answer_v that_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o make_v christ_n a_o liar_n as_o who_o in_o clear_a and_o plain_a word_n say_v he_o give_v they_o that_o body_n which_o be_v deliver_v for_o us._n et_fw-la apol._n 1._o contr_n saintem_fw-la p._n 292._o to_o deny_v all_o eat_n of_o flesh_n be_v plain_o to_o deny_v the_o very_a word_n of_o christ_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n l._n 1._o c._n 11._o art_n 4._o and_o yet_o simlerus_a in_o hosp_n part_n 2._o f._n 348._o say_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n be_v the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n or_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n james_n andreae_n in_o colloq_fw-la montisbel_n p._n 38._o to_o i_o it_o seem_v altogether_o new_a and_o unheard_a of_o that_o the_o supper_n be_v deny_v to_o be_v the_o testament_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o plain_a word_n allege_v out_o of_o luke_n et_fw-la musculus_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la titul_fw-la de_fw-fr caena_n in_o luke_n and_o paul_n it_o be_v say_v of_o this_o cup_n that_o it_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v shed_v for_o us._n l._n 1._o c._n 11._o art_n 6._o and_o yet_o illyricus_n in_o luc._n 22._o v._n 20._o write_v which_o be_v pour_v out_o for_o you_o in_o the_o greek_a text_n must_v needs_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o cup_n touch_v matrimony_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n matrimony_n of_o matrimony_n c._n 12._o art_n 5._o and_o yet_o thus_o profess_v the_o confession_n of_o wittenberg_n c._n de_fw-fr coniugio_fw-la we_o confess_v that_o marriage_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o life_n institute_v and_o approve_v by_o god_n and_o a_o mystery_n as_o common_o it_o be_v expound_v a_o great_a sacrament_n in_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n as_o paul_n say_v touch_v faith_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o can_v be_v without_o good_a faith_n of_o faith_n work_n l._n 1._o cap._n 13._o art_n 8._o which_o doctrine_n thus_o condemn_v schlusselburg_n l._n 1._o theol._n art_n 15._o aretius_n say_v that_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n be_v conjoin_v as_o the_o species_n and_o her_o propriety_n as_o a_o man_n and_o reason_n but_o we_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v and_o learn_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v false_a they_o deny_v that_o faith_n itself_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o for_o justice_n l._n 1._o c._n 13._o art_n 19_o and_o yet_o thus_o judge_v vrbanus_n regius_n in_o loc_n fol._n 46._o sincere_a faith_n on_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n be_v our_o very_a justice_n faith_n be_v impute_v for_o justice_n to_o the_o beleiver_n abraham_n believe_v and_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o justice_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o hemorroïssa_n be_v pure_a libr._n 1._o capit_fw-la 13._o articul_fw-la 25._o and_o yet_o thus_o bullinger_n in_o marci_n 5._o the_o power_n of_o true_a faith_n be_v singular_o express_v touch_v good_a work_n they_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v necessary_a work_n of_o good_a work_n to_o salvation_n l._n 1._o c._n 14._o art_n 13._o and_o yet_o piscator_fw-la say_v in_o thes_n loc_fw-la 10._o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o same_o say_v the_o electorals_n in_o colloq_fw-la aldeburgico_fw-la they_o deny_v also_o that_o good_a work_n be_v cause_n of_o salvation_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o art_n 15._o and_o yet_o thus_o write_v illyricus_n in_o cleave_v tractat_fw-la 6._o titul_n de_fw-fr var._n bonum_fw-la operum_fw-la praed_fw-we we_o hear_v that_o to_o many_o effect_n and_o praise_n and_o even_o salvation_n itself_o be_v attribute_v in_o scripture_n to_o good_a work_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o oftentimes_o somewhat_o to_o much_o praise_n be_v ascribe_v to_o good_a work_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v to_o they_o nor_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o they_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v exact_o true_o and_o proper_o they_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v meritorious_a lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o art_n 8._o and_o yet_o thus_o profess_v apollog_n confession_n in_o melancthon_n tom_fw-mi 3._o see_v work_n be_v some_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n they_o be_v true_o say_v to_o be_v meritorious_a reward_n be_v right_o say_v to_o be_v due_a to_o they_o again_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n say_v that_o life_n everlasting_a be_v render_v to_o they_o which_o protestant_n deny_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o articul_fw-la 7._o they_o deny_v also_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v do_v for_o god_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o art_n 20._o of_o which_o point_n thus_o judge_v kemnice_n in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la oper_n the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n most_o clear_o teach_v that_o good_a work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v for_o god_n sake_n touch_v virginity_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v counsel_v in_o scripture_n l_o 1._o c._n 15._o art_n 4._o and_o nevertheless_o vrbanus_n regius_n in_o locis_fw-la fol._n 372._o say_v virginity_n be_v counsel_v in_o the_o gospel_n not_o command_v and_o in_o interp._n loc_fw-la 49._o virginity_n be_v only_o a_o counsel_n not_o a_o precept_n concern_v sin_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o can_v remain_v with_o sin_n of_o sin_n justice_n l._n 1._o c._n 16._o art_n 17._o yet_o thus_o pronuonce_v luther_n in_o gal._n 3._o these_o be_v direct_o opposite_a that_o a_o christian_a be_v just_a and_o love_a of_o god_n and_o yet_o with_o all_o be_v a_o sinner_n again_o how_o be_v these_o twoe_o contradictory_n true_a at_o once_o i_o h●ue_v sin_n &_o be_o most_o worthy_a of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o the_o father_n love_v i_o they_o deny_v that_o sin_n put_v a_o man_n out_o of_o grace_n l._n 1_o c._n 16._o art_n 6._o and_o yet_o thus_o write_v hemingius_n in_o enchir_n class_n 2._o if_o a_o penitent_a sin_n against_o his_o conscience_n as_o david_n do_v with_o murder_n and_o adultery_n he_o cast_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o become_v guilty_a of_o god_n wrath_n and_o unless_o he_o do_v penance_n fall_v into_o eternal_a punishment_n it_o be_v a_o horrible_a madness_n to_o say_v that_o such_o retain_v the_o holy_a ghost_n when_o as_o paul_n say_v plain_o gal._n 5._o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v manifest_a and_o they_o that_o do_v such_o shall_v not_o possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o deny_v that_o the_o widow_n whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v 1._o timoth._n do_v sin_n in_o marry_v l._n 1._o c._n 16._o art_n 15._o and_o yet_o thus_o bullinger_n in_o tim._n 5._o sure_o to_o marry_v of_o itself_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o because_o they_o have_v once_o give_v their_o promise_n to_o christ_n the_o spouse_n and_o to_o the_o church_n and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n have_v leave_v marriage_n hereupon_o their_o marriage_n turn_v to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v that_o which_o paul_n term_v to_o become_v wanton_a against_o christ_n bucer_fw-la lib._n 2._o de_fw-la regno_fw-la
christi_fw-la c._n 23._o they_o who_o have_v give_v their_o first_o promise_n to_o god_n of_o a_o single_a life_n have_v indeed_o judgement_n and_o reprehension_n caluin_n upon_o this_o place_n say_v that_o these_o widow_n give_v away_o their_o liberty_n to_o marry_v and_o do_v free_v themselves_o from_o the_o bind_v of_o marriage_n for_o all_o their_o life_n and_o do_v deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o liberty_n to_o marry_v how_o then_o do_v not_o they_o sin_n by_o marry_v touch_v justification_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v never_o last_v justification_n of_o justification_n l._n 1._o c._n 17._o art_n 15._o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n to_o scripture_n as_o confess_v saxon._n cap._n 11._o confess_v in_o these_o word_n by_o the_o say_n of_o luke_n he_o go_v and_o bring_v other_o spirit_n and_o the_o like_a say_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o some_o regenerate_v do_v contristate_n and_o cast_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v afterward_o cast_v away_o of_o god_n and_o become_v guilty_a of_o his_o wrath_n and_o eternal_a punishment_n touch_v eternal_a life_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o reward_n l._n 1._o life_n of_o eternal_a life_n c._n 18._o art_n 1._o and_o yet_o thus_o speak_v apologia_fw-la confess_v aug._n in_o melancthon_n tom_n 3._o the_o scripture_n call_v eternal_a life_n areward_n again_o the_o name_n of_o reward_n in_o this_o manner_n agree_v to_o eternal_a life_n because_o eternal_a life_n reward_v good_a work_n touch_v hell_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v a_o place_n l._n 1._o c_o 18._o act_n hell_n of_o hell_n 7._o which_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n thus_o confess_v bucanus_n loc_fw-la 4._o hell_n be_v a_o certain_a place_n hide_v and_o horrible_a appoint_v of_o god_n for_o damn_a man_n and_o angel_n to_o their_o eternal_a pain_n nu._n 16._o 30._o math._n 8._o 12._o et_fw-la piscat_fw-la or_o l._n 1._o loc_fw-la 22._o the_o scripture_n every_o where_o testify_v that_o the_o damn_a shall_v suffer_v these_o torment_n in_o hell_n to_o wit_v a_o place_n under_o earth_n appoint_v for_o their_o punishment_n and_o regius_n in_o loc_n do_fw-mi l_o de_fw-la peccato_fw-la the_o scripture_n express_o depute_v twoe_o place_n for_o soul_n heaven_n for_o the_o good_a and_o hell_n for_o the_o bad_a touch_v the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o deny_v that_o we_o may_v pray_v law_n of_o god_n law_n for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o it_o lib._n 1._o c._n 19_o art_n 5._o and_o yet_o thus_o write_v perkins_n in_o explic._n orat_fw-la dom._n be_v do_v that_o be_v let_v obedience_n be_v give_v to_o it_o let_v it_o be_v fulfil_v of_o all_o man_n concern_v man_n will_n they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v free_a in_o evil_a will_n of_o man_n will_n l._n 1._o c._n 21._o art_n 2._o and_o yet_o thus_o write_v regius_n in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr peccato_fw-la to_o say_v with_o maniche_n that_o man_n can_v avoid_v sin_n this_o error_n be_v heresy_n roger_n on_o the_o 10._o article_n the_o manichee_n affirm_v how_o man_n be_v not_o voluntary_o bring_v but_o necessary_o drive_v unto_o sin_n these_o and_o many_o more_o protestanticall_a doctrine_n protestant_n themselves_o confess_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n why_o then_o may_v not_o we_o conclude_v that_o protestant_n do_v contradict_v the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v beside_o all_o the_o foresay_v argument_n they_o themselves_o plain_o confess_v it_o of_o many_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o end_n and_o scope_n of_o this_o work_n peroration_n or_o conclusion_n to_o the_o reader_n thou_o have_v see_v good_a reader_n in_o this_o work_n protestant_n catholik_o advantage_n for_o scripture_n over_o protestant_n what_o great_a advantage_n catholik_o have_v over_o protestant_n even_o for_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n or_o holy_a scripture_n thou_o have_v see_v that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n in_o more_o than_o twoe_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o point_n of_o controversy_n rely_v upon_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n whereas_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n rely_v upon_o humane_a principle_n humane_a conference_n humane_a consequence_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o man_n thou_o have_v see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o all_o these_o foresay_v article_n give_v sentence_n for_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o condemn_v the_o protestant_n in_o express_a word_n and_o those_o purposely_o speak_v and_o in_o their_o plain_a &_o usual_a sense_n in_o which_o such_o word_n use_v to_o be_v speak_v and_o take_v of_o man_n then_o the_o which_o no_o sentence_n can_v be_v give_v clear_a or_o manifester_n thou_o have_v see_v how_o many_o how_o voluntary_a how_o intolerable_a corruption_n both_o of_o the_o word_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n protestant_n be_v force_v to_o make_v lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n they_o have_v now_o that_o judge_n to_o who_o alone_o they_o appeal_v let_v they_o hear_v he_o let_v they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o sentence_n he_o speak_v plain_o direct_o and_o purposely_o and_o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o plain_a and_o usual_a sense_n in_o which_o man_n use_v such_o word_n that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v also_o in_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o he_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o all_o and_o the_o only_a pretext_n of_o protestant_n touch_v the_o scripture_n be_v take_v away_o for_o who_o unless_o he_o will_v shut_v his_o eye_n do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o they_o be_v most_o plain_o condemn_v of_o the_o scripture_n who_o be_v condemn_v of_o it_o in_o so_o many_o and_o so_o weighty_a article_n in_o such_o plain_a word_n and_o so_o clear_a sense_n and_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o vain_a struggle_v to_o seek_v to_o obscure_v the_o clearness_n of_o such_o a_o sentence_n by_o humane_a gloss_n and_o exposition_n such_o as_o be_v never_o want_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v want_v to_o any_o heretik_a the_o protestant_n have_v often_o cry_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n that_o faith_n rely_v only_o upon_o scripture_n which_o i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v follow_v in_o the_o foresay_v 260._o article_n and_o let_v go_v their_o own_o gloss_n and_o consequence_n which_o be_v not_o sound_v in_o scripture_n and_o follow_v they_o who_o produce_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n against_o the_o word_n of_o man_n which_o counsel_n though_o it_o of_o itself_o be_v most_o reasonable_a yet_o because_o they_o will_v more_o willing_o follow_v it_o when_o they_o shall_v hear_v it_o approve_v by_o their_o own_o master_n i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o some_o of_o they_o luther_n in_o postilla_fw-la in_o festo_fw-la assumpt_n always_o scripture_n protest_v advise_v we_o to_o follow_v they_o that_o follow_v scripture_n stick_v to_o th●se_a thing_n which_o be_v clear_o deliver_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o rely_v not_o upon_o that_o which_o have_v not_o manifest_a authority_n in_o scripture_n the_o protestante_n prince_n in_o praefar_n libr._n concordiae_fw-la in_o true_a simplicity_n of_o faith_n they_o shall_v firm_o insist_v in_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o sure_a manner_n and_o fit_a to_o teach_v the_o ignorant_a melancthon_n in_o act_v wormat._n tom_n 4._o when_o the_o letter_n be_v plain_a it_o be_v manifest_a we_o must_v not_o go_v from_o it_o et_fw-fr ib._n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la staphilum_fw-la nether_a be_v it_o to_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o letter_n when_o there_o be_v no_o obscurity_n or_o anbiguitie_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o all_o man_n again_o where_o the_o word_n be_v manifest_a and_o without_o obscurity_n or_o ambiguity_n it_o be_v impiety_n to_o teach_v or_o think_v the_o contrary_n and_o in_o hospin_n part_n 2._o histor_n fol._n 115._o what_o will_v be_v in_o time_n of_o tentation_n protestant_n harken_v to_o this_o protestant_n when_o the_o conscience_n shall_v ask_v what_o cause_n it_o have_v to_o go_v from_o the_o recaved_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n then_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n will_v be_v lightning_n what_o will_v the_o terrify_a mind_n oppose_v against_o these_o with_o what_o scripture_n with_o what_o word_n of_o god_n will_v she_o strenghthen_v and_o persuade_v herself_o that_o it_o be_v need_v to_o interpret_v they_o by_o a_o metaphor_n they_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o these_o dispute_n who_o so_o much_o delight_n in_o wit_n as_o they_o more_o admire_v subtle_o devise_v reason_n then_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n james_n andrews_n in_o colloq_fw-la montisbel_n pag._n 456._o let_v they_o examine_v and_o judge_v the_o doctrine_n of_o both_o part_n not_o by_o humane_a gloss_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n zuinglius_fw-la libr._n de_fw-fr author_n sedit_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o as_o often_o
of_o the_o azime_n when_o there_o be_v no_o leaven_n bread_n to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o jew_n but_o only_a azime_n and_o beza_n himself_o loc_n cit_fw-la confess_v that_o christ_n celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n in_o azime_n bread_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v the_o eucharist_n rather_o of_o leaven_n bread_n then_o of_o azime_n that_o to_o make_v it_o of_o azime_n be_v a_o blemish_n savour_v judaisme_n and_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v art_fw-la ix_o whether_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v make_v be_v to_o be_v bless_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n matthew_n 26._o vers_fw-la 26._o jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o bless_a and_o bless_v bread_n and_o wine_n bless_v break_v and_o he_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 1._o cor._n 10._o v._n 16._o the_o chalice_n of_o benediction_n which_o we_o do_v bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v d._n stapleton_n in_o math._n 26._o v._n 26._o an_o other_o circumstance_n be_v that_o he_o bless_v the_o bread_n and_o chalice_n protestant_n express_o deny_v zuinglius_fw-la l._n de_fw-fr caena_n to_o 2._o f._n 294._o they_o shall_v not_o use_v the_o use_v the_o word_n of_o blessing_n not_o to_o be_v use_v word_n of_o benediction_n and_o blessing_n in_o this_o place_n 1._o cor._n 10._o cit_fw-la for_o common_o the_o use_n to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o word_n of_o consecrate_v caluin_n in_o math._n 26._o v._n 26._o matthew_n and_o mark_n use_v the_o word_n of_o blessing_n but_o see_v in_o place_n thereof_o we_o read_v in_o luke_n the_o word_n give_v blessing_n for_o thanks_o give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o see_v also_o that_o in_o the_o chalice_n they_o add_v the_o word_n of_o thanks_n give_v they_o clear_o interpret_v their_o former_a speech_n whereby_o the_o ignorance_n of_o papist_n be_v more_o ridiculous_a who_o express_v their_o blessing_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o if_o christ_n have_v use_v a_o exorcism_n musculus_fw-la in_o loc_fw-la do_fw-mi de_fw-fr missa_fw-la to_o bless_v be_v not_o to_o consecrate_v but_o to_o give_v thanks_o and_o to_o speak_v well_o of_o one_o that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v that_o nether_a matthew_n nor_o mark_v nor_o paul_n have_v use_v the_o word_n of_o blessing_n nether_a matthew_n nor_o paul_n use_v the_o word_n blessing_n blessing_n in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v other_o who_o will_v have_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o s._n matthew_n to_o signify_v nothing_o but_o thanks_o give_v and_o so_o have_v the_o bibles_n of_o k._n edward_n and_o of_o q._n elizabeth_n 1562._o translate_v it_o the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o christ_n bless_v the_o bread_n and_o that_o we_o bless_v the_o chalice_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o blessing_n of_o bread_n be_v a_o exorcism_n that_o by_o blessing_n nothing_o be_v mean_v but_o thanks_n give_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o use_v it_o here_o that_o nether_a matthew_n nor_o paul_n use_v it_o in_o this_o matter_n which_o contradiction_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o clear_a as_o some_o protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v l_o 2._o c._n 30._o art_fw-la x._o whether_o there_o aught_v to_o be_v make_v any_o preparation_n to_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n 1._o cor._n 11._o v._n 28._o but_o let_v a_o man_n prove_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o chalice_n for_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o eat_v and_o drink_v judgement_n to_o himself_o catholik_o express_o affirm_v card._n bellarm._n lib._n 4._o the_o eucharist_n cap._n 17._o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v that_o preparation_n to_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o faith_n alone_o but_o true_a penance_n and_o confession_n of_o sin_n if_o a_o man_n after_o baptism_n be_v fall_v into_o mortal_a sin_n protestant_n express_o deny_v luther_n postilla_fw-la in_o die_fw-la pascae_fw-la fol._n 241._o we_o teach_v that_o it_o moment_n preparation_n of_o no_o moment_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n and_o of_o no_o value_n at_o all_o whatsoever_o we_o prepare_v of_o ourselves_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o do_v who_o by_o their_o confession_n and_o by_o other_o work_n will_v make_v themselves_o worthy_a to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v a_o horrible_a error_n and_o abuse_n et._n f._n 242._o we_o have_v condemn_v they_o and_o not_o without_o cause_n who_o endeavour_n by_o their_o work_n to_o come_v worthy_o the_o same_o luther_n lib._n de_fw-la captivitat_fw-la babylon_n tom_fw-mi 2._o communicate_v only_o erroneous_a conscience_n worthy_o communicate_v cap._n the_o eucharist_n out_o of_o these_o thing_n we_o conclude_v who_o do_v worhy_o communicate_v to_o wit_n only_o they_o who_o have_v sad_a afflict_a trouble_a confound_v and_o erroneous_a conscience_n which_o doctrine_n whitaker_n defend_v ad_fw-la ration_n 8._o campiani_n pag._n 41._o again_o by_o which_o thou_o see_v that_o to_o have_v mass_n worthy_o grace_v the_o more_o wicked_a the_o near_a to_o grace_v no_v other_o thing_n be_v require_v but_o faith_n and_o apud_fw-la fabritium_n in_o artic_a 20._o augustan_n by_o how_o much_o the_o wickede_a thou_o be_v by_o so_o much_o the_o soon_o god_n give_v thou_o grace_n and_o in_o psalm_n 5._o tom_n 3._o fol._n 172._o i_o will_v say_v one_o thing_n rash_o and_o bold_o in_o this_o god_n blasphemer_n most_o grateful_a to_o god_n life_n there_o be_v none_o near_o to_o god_n than_o these_o hater_n and_o blasphemer_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o more_o grateful_a or_o love_a child_n which_o also_o whitaker_n mantain_v loco_fw-la citat_fw-la and_o concione_n de_fw-fr praeparat_fw-la ad_fw-la euchar._n an._n 1518._o the_o best_a disposition_n dispose_v worst_a dispose_v best_a dispose_v be_v no_o other_o then_o that_o wherewith_o thou_o be_v worst_a dispose_v and_o on_o the_o contrary_a than_o thou_o be_v worst_a dispose_v when_o thou_o be_v best_a dispose_v schusselburg_n catal._n haeret._n tom_n 8._o pag._n 216._o papist_n do_v suffice_v faith_n suffice_v impudent_o deny_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o sufficient_a preparation_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n kemnice_n 2._o part_n exam._n tit_n de_fw-fr preparat_fw-la p._n 178._o i'faith_o alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a praeparation_n the_o like_a have_v caluin_n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 14._o §_o 26._o the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o a_o man_n must_v prove_v or_o prepare_v himself_o to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n that_o who_o receave_v it_o unworthy_o receave_v his_o judgement_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o we_o must_v not_o make_v ourselves_o worthy_a by_o work_n not_o endeavour_v by_o work_n to_o come_v worthy_o that_o they_o only_o communicate_v worthy_o who_o bring_v trouble_v and_o erroneous_a conscience_n that_o we_o need_v nothing_o but_o faith_n that_o the_o best_a disposition_n be_v to_o be_v ill_o dispose_v that_o hater_n and_o blasphemer_n of_o god_n be_v near_a unto_o he_o and_o most_o grateful_a that_o the_o more_o wicked_a one_o be_v the_o soon_o god_n give_v he_o grace_n that_o faith_n be_v a_o sufficient_a preparation_n to_o the_o eucharist_n art_fw-la xi_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n malachi_n 1._o v._o 11._o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o go_v church_n sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n down_o great_a be_v my_o name_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o there_o be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n a_o clean_a oblation_n cap._n 3._o vers_fw-la 3._o he_o shall_v purge_v the_o son_n of_o levi_n and_o will_v streyne_v they_o as_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v offering_n sacrifice_n to_o our_o lord_n in_o justice_n catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 24._o c._n 1._o christ_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n that_o he_o may_v leave_v a_o visible_a sacrifice_n to_o his_o belove_a church_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n require_v offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n the_o father_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n protestant_n express_o deny_v whitaker_n cont._n 4._o q._n 1._o c._n 2._o there_o be_v now_o no_o more_o sacrifice_n church_n no_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n remain_v in_o the_o church_n caluin_n in_o 1_o cor._n 9_o v._n 19_o the_o lord_n institute_v no_o sacrifice_n in_o which_o holy_a minister_n shall_v be_v occupy_v and_o because_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v well_o enough_o know_v i_o will_v rehearse_v no_o more_o of_o their_o say_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o in_o the_o
church_n there_o be_v sacrifice_n and_o offering_n of_o a_o clean_a oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o justice_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n express_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o whitaker_n controu_fw-fr 3._o quaest_n 6._o pag._n 2._o 615._o write_v thus_o without_o preisthood_n there_o be_v no_o church_n and_o vallada_fw-la apologia_fw-la cont_n episcop_n luzon_n c._n 26._o no_o man_n deni_v but_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n art_fw-la xii_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o altar_n in_o the_o church_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n hebrew●_n 13._o v._o 10._o we_o have_v a_o altar_n whereof_o they_o have_v no_o altar_n christian_n have_v a_o altar_n power_n to_o eat_v which_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n isaie_v 19_o ver_fw-la 10._o in_o that_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o altar_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o land_n of_o egypte_n and_o a_o title_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o the_o border_n thereof_o catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 24._o c._n 1._o the_o apostle_n paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o who_o be_v pollute_v with_o participation_n of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n can_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o table_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o a_o table_n in_o both_o place_n understand_v a_o altar_n protestant_n express_o deny_v caluin_n in_o 1._o corinth_n 9_o vers_fw-la 19_o there_o be_v no_o altar_n to_o non●●tar_n they_o have_v non●●tar_n sacrifice_v beza_n in_o colloq_fw-la montisbel_n p._n 350._o paul_n make_v mention_n altar_n paul_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o altar_n of_o a_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o of_o a_o altar_n ad_fw-la repetit_fw-la sanctis_fw-la c._n 4._o i_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o altar_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o l._n quaest_n &_o resp_n vol._n 3._o in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o altar_n but_o only_o of_o a_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n peter_n martyr_n in_o rom._n 11._o altar_n have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n herein_o also_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n be_v well_o know_v the_o conference_n scripture_n plain_o say_v that_o we_o have_v a_o altar_n the_o same_o say_v catholics_n protestant_n plain_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o altar_n that_o paul_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o altar_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o altar_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n art_fw-la xiii_o whether_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v sacrifice_v scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n marc._n 14._o v._n 12._o and_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o azime_n when_o they_o sacrifice_v pascal_n lamb_n sacrifice_v sacrifice_v the_o pasche_n exod._n 12._o ver_fw-la 6._o and_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n shall_v sacrifice_v he_o pascal_n lamb_n at_o even_o catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 24._o c._n 1._o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v sacrifice_v the_o old_a pasche_n in_o remembrance_n of_o their_o go_v out_o of_o egypt_n protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n in_o cathol_n reform_v controu_fw-fr 11._o c._n 5._o the_o paschal_n sacrifice_n no_o sacrifice_n lamb_n be_v a_o sacrament_n but_o no_o sacrifice_n the_o same_o have_v plessie_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la c._n 2._o reineccius_n to_o 4._o armaturae_fw-la c._n 19_o the_o holy_a bible_n no_o where_o sacrifice_v not_o sacrifice_v teach_v that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v immolate_a and_o sacrifice_v tilenus_n in_o syntagmate_n c._n 64._o we_o do_v not_o grant_v that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n proper_o call_v yea_o moses_n express_o deni_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n pareus_n in_o colloq_fw-la theol._n 9_o disput_fw-la 27._o the_o minor_a be_v false_a that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n proper_o call_v beza_n in_o marci_n 14._o v._n 12._o i_o use_v the_o word_n of_o kill_v rather_o than_o of_o sacrifice_v that_o the_o domestical_a banquet_n of_o the_o pasche_n may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o those_o sacrifice_n which_o in_o the_o temple_n be_v do_v of_o the_o priest_n the_o conference_n scripture_n express_o say_v that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n be_v sacrifice_v catholics_n say_v the_o same_o protestant_n express_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sacrifice_v that_o it_o be_v no_o proper_a sacrifice_n that_o it_o be_v a_o domestical_a banquet_n that_o moses_n express_o deni_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v so_o repugnant_a to_o scripture_n as_o same_o protestant_n confess_v it_o see_v lib._n 2._o c._n 30._o the_o sum_n of_o this_o chapter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n out_o of_o all_o which_o have_v be_v rehearse_v in_o this_o chapter_n it_o be_v clear_a how_o different_a a_o eucharist_n protestant_n have_v from_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n propose_v for_o the_o scripture_n and_o catholics_n with_o it_o teach_v that_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v his_o testament_n that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v to_o be_v eat_v that_o while_o the_o eucharist_n be_v institute_v christ_n body_n be_v give_v and_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o that_o the_o chalice_n be_v shed_v in_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o bread_n be_v a_o necessary_a matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o unleavened_a bread_n be_v a_o convenient_a matter_n and_o that_o we_o must_v prepare_v ourselves_o to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n moreover_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o altar_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v sacrifice_v all_o which_o protestant_n do_v deny_v it_o be_v clear_a also_o that_o protestant_n do_v steal_v from_o the_o eucharist_n what_o protest_v steal_v from_o the_o eucharist_n eucharist_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o nature_n of_o his_o testament_n the_o necessity_n of_o bread_n the_o conveniency_n of_o unleavened_a bread_n to_o make_v it_o of_o and_o necessity_n of_o our_o preparation_n to_o receive_v it_o they_o steal_v also_o eat_v and_o drink_v from_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n &_o oblation_n and_o shed_n of_o they_o when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v institute_v and_o from_o the_o church_n they_o steal_v both_o sacrifice_n and_o altar_n and_o sacrifice_v from_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o eucharist_n now_o of_o the_o other_o sacrament_n chapter_n xi_o of_o the_o other_z sacrament_n art_fw-la i._o whether_o priest_n can_n forgive_v sin_n scripture_n express_o affirmeth._n mathew_n 16._o v._o 19_o and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o the_o the_o key_n sin_n priest_n can_v forgive_v sin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n math._n 16._o v._n 19_o amen_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o heaven_n ihon._n 20._o v._o 24._o and_o he_o say_v to_o they_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v catholik_o express_o affirm_v council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 14._o can._n 9_o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o sacramental_a absolution_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o a_o judicial_a act_n but_o a_o bare_a ministry_n of_o pronounce_v or_o declare_v that_o sin_n be_v forgive_v be_v he_o accurse_v protestant_n express_o deny_v perkins_n galath_n 4._o tom_n 2._o the_o pope_n challenge_v to_o can_v they_o can_v himself_o proper_a and_o judicial_a power_n of_o forgive_a and_o retain_v sin_n zuinglius_fw-la in_o art_n 51._o to_o 1._o who_o attribute_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o creature_n rob_v god_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o be_v a_o idolater_n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la luther_n to_o 2._o f._n 430._o these_o word_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v etc._n etc._n have_v not_o that_o sense_n as_o if_o christ_n in_o speak_v they_o will_v give_v his_o disciple_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n in_o exposit_n fidei_fw-la sin_n they_o can_v certify_v a_o man_n of_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n ib._n f._n 557._o wherefore_o all_o these_o thing_n seem_v frivolous_a i_o absoluethee_o i_o certify_v thou_o that_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v this_o be_v deceit_n and_o mere_a trifle_n et_fw-la in_o hebr._n 6._o to_o 4._o he_o say_v that_o christ_n speak_v the_o word_n cite_v out_o of_o math._n 18._o by_o hyperoche_n or_o overlash_v bullinger_n in_o marci_n 2._o man_n do_v not_o forgive_v sin_n but_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v or_o have_v be_v forgive_v in_o christ_n by_o faith_n caluin_n in_o joan._n 20._o v._n
his_o commandment_n which_o it_o say_v plain_o but_o only_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o keep_v they_o wherefore_o i_o thus_o argue_v they_o who_o beside_o the_o foresay_v direct_a opposition_n to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o holy_a write_v be_v also_o force_v to_o expound_v that_o by_o ought_o to_o be_v which_o the_o scripture_n plain_o say_v is_n contradict_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n protestant_n do_v so_o thererefore_o etc._n etc._n chapter_n fourteen_o that_o word_n of_o scripture_n signify_v a_o true_a thing_n they_o expound_v of_o a_o apparent_a or_o show_v my_o 19_o proof_n shall_v be_v because_o word_n of_o scripture_n which_o signify_v a_o true_a thing_n protestant_n be_v compel_v to_o expound_v of_o a_o apparent_a or_o show_v before_o man_n thus_o they_o delude_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n which_o teach_v that_o sacrament_n or_o good_a work_n do_v justify_v or_o redeem_v sin_n that_o evil_a or_o reprobate_a man_n may_v believe_v or_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o reprobate_n may_v be_v justify_v do_v good_a work_n and_o the_o like_a when_o the_o scripture_n say_v 10._o v._n 10._o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v to_o salvation_n luther_n apud_fw-la schlusselburg_n to_o 7._o thereof_o to_o salvation_n 1._o to_o a_o sign_n thereof_o catal._n p._n 234._o answer_v to_o wit_n to_o testify_v salvation_n obtain_v by_o faith_n kemnitius_n ib._n p._n 559._o paul_n speak_v so_o that_o confession_n save_v to_o show_v what_o kind_n of_o faith_n obtain_v eternal_a life_n to_o wit_n firm_a and_o effectual_a wigandus_n ib._n p._n 746._o the_o sense_n be_v by_o faith_n salvation_n be_v apprehend_v but_o by_o month_n be_v manifest_v and_o confession_n of_o salvation_n utter_v et_fw-fr p._n martyr_n in_o 1._o cor._n 12._o salvation_n be_v attribute_v to_o confession_n because_o thence_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v declare_v as_o by_o a_o outward_a sign_n show_n he_o will_v 1._o he_o make_v such_o show_n luther_n in_o postilla_fw-la in_o festo_fw-la stephani_fw-la write_v thus_o what_o he_o here_o say_v how_o often_o will_v i_o gather_v together_o thy_o child_n as_o etc._n etc._n signifith_o that_o god_n deal_v so_o with_o the_o jew_n as_o no_o man_n can_v think_v or_o imagine_v otherwise_o then_o that_o the_o earnest_o will_v gather_v they_o for_o he_o behave_v himself_o as_o a_o man_n shall_v who_o indeed_o will_v it_o and_o postilla_fw-la in_o dom._n 1._o aduentus_fw-la those_o word_n redeem_v thy_o sin_n by_o alm_n he_o thus_o expound_v show_v that_o they_o be_v blot_v out_o and_o dom._n 4._o post_fw-la trinit_fw-la those_o word_n luke_n 6._o forgive_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v forgive_v in_o this_o sort_n if_o i_o forgive_v that_o forgiveness_n make_v meassure_v of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o faith_n and_o certifi_v i_o and_o declare_v my_o faith_n and_o in_o dom._n 9_o make_v yourselves_o friend_n of_o the_o mammon_n of_o iniquity_n that_o be_v by_o outward_a alm_n open_o show_v your_o faith_n whereby_o you_o may_v get_v friend_n that_o poor_a man_n may_v be_v witness_n of_o your_o manifest_a work_n that_o you_o believe_v sincere_o schlusselburg_n tom_fw-mi 7._o catal._n p._n 235._o write_v thus_o sorrow_n show_v work_v 1._o show_v according_a to_o god_n work_v penance_n of_o work_n to_o salvation_n that_o be_v according_a to_o luther_n interpretation_n be_v such_o a_o work_n as_o testify_v of_o salvation_n and_o pag_n seq_n the_o say_n of_o joel_n every_o one_o that_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v safe_a have_v this_o meaning_n that_o call_v upon_o the_o lord_n name_n be_v a_o testimony_n of_o salvation_n receive_v by_o faith_n brentius_n homil_n 1._o in_o dom._n 13_o post_fw-la trinit_fw-la write_v that_o that_o speech_n of_o josias_n 4._o reg._n 23._o he_o return_v to_o our_o lord_n in_o all_o his_o heart_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v what_o josias_n be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o kingdom_n not_o what_o he_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o his_o private_a fault_n reineccius_n to_o 4._o armat_fw-la c._n 15._o those_o word_n rom._n 2._o gentile_n who_o have_v not_o the_o law_n do_v natural_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o law_n expound_v of_o politic_a philosophical_a and_o pharisaicalliustice_n kemnitius_n in_o locis_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr argument_n part_n 2._o say_v that_o those_o word_n deuter._n 6._o it_o shall_v be_v justice_n to_o we_o before_o god_n if_o title_n justitie_n 1._o in_o title_n we_o keeepe_v his_o commandment_n be_v either_o mean_v of_o legal_a justice_n or_o that_o though_o our_o justice_n be_v unclean_a yet_o god_n give_v it_o the_o title_n of_o justice_n he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v either_o only_a legal_a justice_n or_o only_a justice_n in_o name_n sake_n and_o of_o the_o fast_o of_o phinees_n he_o say_v of_o itself_o it_o can_v not_o have_v the_o title_n of_o justice_n but_o be_v repute_v as_o a_o deed_n just_o do_v herbrand_n in_o compend_v theol._n loco_fw-la de_fw-la bonis_fw-la oper_n if_o the_o letter_n redeem_v thy_o sin_n by_o alm_n be_v urge_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a and_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o place_n of_o daniel_n believe_v god_n to_o be_v faith_n redeem_v 1._o sh●w_o ●hy_a faith_n be_v angry_a with_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v appease_v with_o the_o just_a that_o be_v the_o beleiver_n and_o show_v this_o faith_n to_o be_v true_a by_o work_n in_o like_a sort_n speak_v hunnius_n l._n the_o justif_a p._n 198._o of_o those_o word_n toby_n 4._o alm_n deliver_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o from_o death_n zuinglius_fw-la respon_n ad_fw-la confess_v lutheri_fw-la tom_fw-mi 2._o fol._n 477._o those_o say_n of_o paul_n which_o he_o allledgetb_v out_o of_o ephes_n 5._o and_o cleanse_v cleanse_v 1._o signify_v cleanse_v tit._n 3._o of_o the_o water_n cleanse_v by_o the_o word_n and_o of_o the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n they_o undestand_v not_o to_o be_v enallage_n that_o be_v change_n of_o function_n by_o which_o it_o use_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o sign_n which_o they_o signify_v only_o caluin_n in_o joan._n 15._o v._n 2._o those_o word_n every_o branch_n in_o i_o etc._n etc._n expound_v thus_o i_o answer_v many_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n to_o be_v the_o vine_n which_o indeed_o have_v no_o root_n in_o the_o vine_n in_o c._n 16._o vers_fw-la 27._o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v love_v of_o god_n while_o we_o love_v opinion_n in._n 1._o in_o man_n opinion_n christ_n because_o we_o have_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o fatherlie_a love_n in_o actor_n 8._o v._n 13._o he_o believe_v he_o expound_v he_o think_v he_o believe_v in_o show_n just_a 1._o in_o outward_a show_n ezech._n 18._o ver_fw-la 24._o how_o do_v ezechiel_n mean_a that_o the_o just_a fall_n away_o this_o question_n be_v soon_o answer_v because_o he_o treat_v not_o of_o the_o livelie_a root_n of_o justice_n but_o of_o the_o outward_a show_n or_o appearance_n in_o ephes_n 5._o v._n 26._o that_o paul_n say_v we_o be_v wash_v by_o baptism_n be_v because_o there_o god_n testify_v our_o wash_n unto_o we_o and_o with_o all_o do_v what_o he_o show_v in_o colos_n 2._o v._n 12._o we_o be_v bury_v together_o with_o he_o by_o baptism_n he_o speak_v after_o his_o manner_n attribute_v the_o efficacy_n to_o the_o sacrament_n lest_o it_o shall_v in_o vain_a signify_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o jacob_n 2._o vers_fw-la 23._o he_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n know_a justify_v 1._o know_a that_o be_v by_o the_o fruit_n his_o justice_n be_v knowneand_v approve_a de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la pag._n 714._o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o the_o scripture_n esteem_v saul_n work_v by_o the_o outward_a show_n commend_v his_o innocence_n and_o honesty_n et_fw-la 3_o instit_fw-la c._n 4._o §_o 36._o that_o to_o redeem_v dan._n 4._o be_v rather_o refer_v to_o man_n then_o to_o god_n and_o the_o same_o he_o say_v of_o that_o of_o solomon_n charity_n cover_v sin_n and_o of_o other_o such_o place_n beza_n in_o colloq_fw-la montisbel_n p._n 388._o we_o say_v that_o baptism_n of_o water_n be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n that_o be_v signify_v the_o inward_a thereof_o regeneration_n 1._o sign_n thereof_o regeneration_n in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o v._n 1._o it_o be_v one_o thing_n true_o to_o embrace_v christ_n a_o other_o only_o with_o mouth_n to_o profess_v christ_n with_o simon_n magus_n and_o judas_n and_o yet_o these_o be_v say_v even_o to_o believe_v to_o wit_n according_a to_o the_o common_a use_n of_o speech_n because_o they_o seem_v to_o believe_v in_o math._n 19_o ver_fw-la 2._o if_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a etc._n etc._n that_o be_v if_o thou_o will_v
so_o manifest_a that_o much_o of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v in_o old_a time_n condemn_v of_o the_o father_n for_o heresy_n as_o themselves_o confess_v it_o for_o touch_v the_o heresy_n of_o aërius_n thus_o write_v bucan_n instit_fw-la loc_fw-la 42._o do_v the_o father_n right_o reckon_v the_o opinion_n aerius_n protest_v confess_v they_o hold_v the_o heresy_n of_o aerius_n of_o aërius_n who_o make_v no_o distinction_n between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n among_o heresy_n no_o more_o sure_o than_o these_o other_o his_o opinion_n 1._o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o make_v prayer_n or_o offering_n for_o the_o dead_a 2._o that_o dead_a saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pray_v unto_o 3._o that_o there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o set_a day_n of_o fast_v beza_n respon_n ad_fw-la serau_n c._n 32._o sure_o seravia_n if_o thou_o do_v think_v aërius_n to_o have_v be_v a_o heretic_n in_o those_o three_o former_a point_n all_o the_o reform_a church_n this_o day_n be_v heretic_n to_o thou_o as_o well_o as_o they_o be_v to_o the_o papist_n vorstius_n in_o antibel_n p._n 201._o aërius_n be_v unjust_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o the_o father_n angelocrator_fw-la l._n 7._o the_o chronol_n the_o opinion_n of_o aërius_n a_o most_o learned_a man_n that_o he_o reject_v prayer_n for_o dead_a and_o set_v fast_o and_o make_v a_o priest_n equal_a to_o a_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v withal_o unless_o with_o aërius_n he_o have_v impugn_a the_o trinity_n whitaker_n cont._n 2._o q._n 5._o cap._n 7._o epiphanius_n indeed_o and_o austin_n after_o he_o put_v aërius_n among_o heretic_n but_o if_o he_o hold_v nothing_o but_o these_o point_n he_o be_v not_o hereike_v cartwright_n replica_fw-la 2._o p._n 618._o if_o it_o must_v prevail_v against_o i_o that_o aerius_n a_o heretic_n will_v make_v a_o bishop_n and_o priest_n all_o one_o who_o epiphanius_n a_o catholic_a thought_n to_o be_v distinct_a and_o different_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o austin_n reckon_v it_o among_o the_o heresy_n of_o of_o aërius_n by_o this_o way_n will_v rise_v a_o great_a prejudice_n to_o the_o truth_n wherewith_o we_o believe_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a nor_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o they_o for_o epiphanius_n to_o 1._o haer_fw-mi 7._o call_v this_o a_o heresy_n of_o aërius_n and_o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v austin_n haer_fw-mi 51._o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v orthodox_n doctrine_n gratianus_n antiiesuita_n part_n 1._o pagin_v 528._o sure_o if_o one_o take_v away_o those_o thing_n which_o aërius_n be_v rather_o feign_v then_o prove_v to_o have_v hold_v with_o the_o arian_n about_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o which_o may_v be_v just_o and_o deserve_o reprehend_v in_o his_o doctrine_n daneus_n in_o libr._n augustini_fw-la de_fw-la haeres_fw-la capit_fw-la 53._o the_o aërian_o be_v quick_o suppress_v because_o they_o be_v oppugn_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o bishop_n 1._o aërius_n teach_v that_o a_o priest_n do_v not_o differ_v from_o a_o bishop_n in_o order_n and_o degree_n which_o doctrine_n i_o see_v not_o why_o it_o shall_v be_v condemn_v 2._o that_o prayer_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o dead_a because_o they_o can_v be_v holpen_v by_o such_o suffrage_n of_o we_o why_o christian_n shall_v not_o admit_v this_o i_o see_v not_o 3._o that_o fast_n be_v not_o be_v appoint_v upon_o certain_a set_v and_o solemn_a day_n yearly_a as_o be_v the_o fast_a of_o lent_n for_o that_o all_o this_o kind_n of_o aniversarie_n fast_n be_v superstitious_a and_o not_o to_o be_v use_v of_o christian_n which_o sure_o be_v true_a 4._o that_o there_o be_v no_o pascha_fw-la among_o christian_n which_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v and_o celebrate_v nether_a ought_v this_o opinion_n of_o the_o aërian_o to_o be_v condemn_v because_o it_o be_v true_a wherefore_o we_o have_v not_o note_v these_o man_n among_o heretic_n touch_v the_o heresy_n of_o jovinian_a thus_o write_v the_o jovinian_a of_o jovinian_a same_o daneus_fw-la l._n cit_fw-la c._n 82._o jovinian_a do_v equal_a marriage_n with_o single_a life_n and_o virginity_n for_o that_o both_o of_o they_o be_v of_o themselves_o indifferent_a and_o no_o part_n of_o god_n true_a worship_n as_o also_o because_o etc._n etc._n this_o why_o it_o shall_v be_v erroneus_fw-la nether_a hierome_n prove_v nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o father_n have_v prove_v whitaker_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la jovinian_a thought_n that_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n and_o fast_v be_v not_o meritorious_a i_o answer_v be_v the_o choice_n of_o meat_n meritorious_a follie._n to_o fast_o for_o this_o end_n to_o merit_v eternal_a life_n be_v to_o abuse_v fast_v we_o willing_o agree_v with_o jovinian_a in_o this_o point_n jovinian_a teach_v that_o marriage_n be_v equal_a to_o virginity_n in_o dignity_n and_o merit_n so_o also_o paul_n so_o christ_n so_o we_o all_o teach_v indeed_o hierome_n invethe_v against_o jovinian_a for_o this_o cause_n hunfre_n ad_fw-la rat._n 3._o camp_n we_o grant_v it_o be_v true_a which_o sanders_n say_v of_o the_o jovinian_n and_o protestant_n that_o fast_v or_o abstinence_n from_o some_o certain_a meat_n profit_v nothing_o touch_v the_o heresy_n of_o vigilantius_n thus_o humfre_v loc_n cit_fw-la vigilantius_n of_o vigilantius_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o reliks_n of_o saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o we_o also_o vigilantius_n teach_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o light_a torch_n or_o to_o wachat_v the_o sepulcher_n of_o martyr_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o we_o teach_v the_o same_o and_o much_o rather_o he_o teach_v that_o saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v nor_o that_o man_n ought_v superstitious_o to_o run_v to_o their_o monument_n we_o say_v the_o same_o vorstius_n in_o antibel_n p._n 162._o the_o heresy_n allege_v of_o bellarmin_n be_v indeed_o no_o heresy_n for_o example_n which_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o hierome_n touch_v jovinian_a and_o vigilantius_n and_o out_o of_o epiphanius_n touch_v aerius_n and_o some_o few_o other_o angelocrator_fw-la loc_fw-la cit_fw-la vigilantius_n a_o frenchman_n but_o a_o most_o learned_a prelate_n in_o spain_n deni_v that_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v and_o will_v have_v riches_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o poverty_n against_o he_o hierome_n write_v beza_n in_o 2._o part_n resp_n ad_fw-la acta_fw-la montisb_n hierome_n defend_v a_o ill_a cause_n that_o be_v invocation_n of_o saint_n against_o vigilantius_n etc._n etc._n luther_n in_o postilla_fw-la exalt_v sanctae_fw-la crucis_fw-la vigilantius_n write_v of_o this_o matter_n worship_n of_o reliks_n against_o who_o hierome_n earnest_o oppose_v himself_o which_o i_o wish_v have_v not_o be_v do_v and_o if_o vigilantius_n his_o book_n be_v extant_a as_o hieroms_n be_v i_o believe_v vigilantius_n write_v more_o christiane_o of_o this_o matter_n then_o hierome_n serranus_n count_v hayum_n part_n 3._o the_o discreet_a reader_n see_v that_o hierome_n in_o that_o book_n against_o vigilantius_n pass_v not_o only_o the_o bound_n of_o modesty_n but_o also_o of_o truth_n jewel_n in_o defence_n apol._n part_n 1._o c._n 2._o sect_n 3._o hierome_n reprove_v vigilantius_n that_o he_o reprehend_v wake_n invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_n of_o relic_n light_n and_o other_o such_o thing_n origen_n of_o origen_n as_o for_o the_o heresy_n of_o origen_n thus_o write_v spalatensis_n l._n 5._o de_fw-fr repub._n c._n 6._o n._n 44._o origen_n be_v shroud_o tax_v of_o theophilus_n because_o he_o hold_v that_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o work_v sanctification_n by_o the_o work_n as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v wrought_v but_o only_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o worker_n and_o that_o god_n do_v not_o use_v material_a and_o insensible_a creature_n to_o import_v sanctification_n to_o man_n but_o theophilus_n while_o he_o do_v reprove_v this_o opinion_n or_o error_n of_o origen_n be_v all_o etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o herein_o protestant_n teach_v as_o origen_n do_v as_o appear_v by_o what_o have_v be_v relate_v l._n 1._o cap._n 10._o artic_a 7._o final_o daneus_n contr._n 4._o pag._n 770._o confess_v to_o agree_v novatians_n of_o messalians_n and_o novatians_n with_o the_o messalian_o that_o habitual_a concupiscence_n in_o the_o just_a be_v sin_n and_o with_o novatian_n that_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v anoint_v thou_o see_v reader_n that_o protestant_n plain_o confess_v that_o they_o defend_v the_o condemn_a doctrine_n of_o aërius_n jovinian_a vigilantius_n origen_n messalian_o novatians_n and_o that_o s._n austin_n s._n hierome_n s._n epiphanians_n father_n bishop_n with_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o do_v condemn_v their_o doctrine_n for_o heresy_n and_o they_o for_o heretic_n who_o i_o advise_v to_o consider_v well_o those_o word_n of_o beza_n write_v of_o a_o late_a heretik_a epist_n 81._o he_o plain_o and_o without_o dissimulation_n hould_v and_o account_v origen_n aërius_n heluidius_fw-la etc._n etc._n not_o for_o heretic_n but_o for_o